Harry-Hermione: Legendary Love by coolman

Rating: PG13
Genres: Drama, Romance
Relationships: Harry & Hermione
Book: Harry & Hermione, Books 1 - 6
Published: 28/11/2005
Last Updated: 15/04/2006
Status: Completed

The story starts after Harry's sixth years ends. Harry and Hermione seem to have grown apart
during the previous year. Will their friendship survive the ultimate test? Can it transform into
love? Hermione's world turned upside down because of a request made by her parents. There is
some action in the first three chapters and then it is complete drama and romance. Can Harry and
Hermione overcome the numerous obstacles in their way and realize their feelings for one another?
To find out more, continue reading...... PLEASE REVIEW TOO. NOW COMPLETED!




1. Concerned Parents
--------------------

**A/N: Hi, this is my first attempt at original fanfic. The earlier one I’d written was based
on a movie. Unlike that, in this one all ideas are mine. This takes off right after sixth year
ends. I’m trying to write longer chapters in this one since that is what most readers want. So
there will not be daily updates. I’ll try to update once or twice a week.**

**Please take a few moments to REVIEW. Reading them (even if they are negative) is a great
source of encouragement for me. It only takes about thirty seconds or so. Anyway, here it goes……
Happy** **Reading****!!!**

Chapter One: Concerned Parents

It was a normal morning at the Granger’s residence. Robert and Diana were working in their newly
opened clinic. Their only daughter Hermione Granger sat in her bedroom reading a book on Potions.
She wasn’t sure if Hogwarts would open this year but wanted to keep up with her work all the same.
The last days had passed off without any major incident. She had kept up with the news of the
wizarding world through the Daily Prophet. Voldemort and his supporters had been relatively quiet
after the death of Albus Dumbledore, whom they used to consider a major threat. Just as she put her
book down her mother came into the room.

“Hi Hermione, I wondered if you are ready to have a serious chat with your dad and me this
evening,” she asked.

“Sure mum,” replied Hermione, as her mother walked out. Hermione grew curious. It seemed from
her mother’s tone that something was bothering her parents. She hoped that all her friends were
alright. She got back to her book but couldn’t concentrate very well. It wasn’t until seven in the
evening that she sat down with her parents in the living room.

“So Hermione,” started Robert, “Diana and me were wondering if you could tell us something about
your school life and friends since we know so little”.

Hermione hadn’t expected this. Her parents, though very caring, had stayed out of her life as a
witch. They had given her complete freedom to decide what she wanted to do and had complete faith
in the decisions she took. Of course they knew that Harry and Ron were her best friends but nothing
more than that. She had always wanted to share her experiences of Hogwarts with them but hadn’t
done so. She always thought that like most muggles her parents didn’t want to believe in the
existence of magic. Diana saw the confused expression on Hermione’s face and put her hands on her
shoulder.

“Hermione, I know we haven’t been the best parents as far as your involvement in magic is
concerned but we realize that there may be things you want to share with us. So Robert and I have
decided to have an open mind about magic. You can tell us whatever you want to. You’ve been going
to Hogwarts for six years now. We don’t know anything about what all you have been through. So
please tell us everything you want to, right from your first year,” she said.

Hermione couldn’t believe it. Her parents meant a great deal to her. Now she would be able to
tell them the most important parts of her life. She started with the troll incident, chasing the
philosopher’s stone, brewing polyjuice potion, getting petrified, riding a hippogriff with Harry to
save Sirius, helping Harry with the tasks of the triwizard tournament, the date with Victor, the
incidents at the ministry of magic and finally the events leading up to Dumbledore’s death. She was
careful not to miss out on anything. She was so engrossed in speaking that she didn’t notice the
stunned expressions on her parent’s faces.

Robert and Diana did not say anything for a while. Hermione had expected such a reaction as her
years at Hogwarts were not like a normal teenager girl’s life, even by magical standards. Robert
excused himself and gestured to Diana to follow him. Hermione heard her parents speak in low voices
in the next room. She waited patiently for them to return.

“Hermione, Diana and I thought that perhaps… you should not got go back to Hogwarts this year,”
said Robert, walking into the living room. Hermione was shocked. Didn’t her parents always let her
decide on her connections with the magical world?

“I can’t do that Dad. You know I can’t. I’ve to complete my studies. Also Harry and Ron will go
after the horcruxes. I’d promised Harry that I’d go with him. The magical world needs me at a time
like this,” Hermione replied quickly.

“Sweetheart, you know that we have your best interests in mind. You are way too young to get
involved in something as dangerous as this. The other wizards… what did you call them… aurors I
think, they can look after this. Your safety is our prime concern and we feel that home will be the
safest place for you,” Diana said.

“But Mum, you don’t understand! The world will never be safe until Voldemort is around. He
will…,” started Hermione but was cut off by Diana.

“I know this is tough for you Hermione, so maybe you should think over it for sometime. Clear
your thoughts during the night and we’ll continue this discussion tomorrow morning. Just remember
Robert and I would not be able to forgive ourselves if something happened to you. You are our only
child,” Diana said in a slightly choked voice. Hermione couldn’t say anything to this. She quietly
nodded before getting up to leave for her room.

Hermione’s mind was flooded. She didn’t know what to do. Hogwarts was her life. It was where she
belonged. Her best friends were there. Not going back to Hogwarts was unimaginable just a few
minutes ago. But after hearing her parents and their concerns she was confused. She remembered how
her dad taught her to ride a bike. Her mum was an awesome cook who always made her favourite
dishes. Both of them being dentists always advised her to stay away from sweats, something which
she didn’t obey while she was at Hogwarts. Her eyes fell on a picture of the three of them. This
was taken the year before she joined Hogwarts, in Paris. They had gone on a holiday to celebrate
Robert’s new job. A few tears leaked out of her eyes. She felt guilty for not being with her
parents much over the past six years. She thought about Harry who had no parents. If her parents
didn’t care for her she would have spent her whole life like his time with the Dursleys. The choked
voice of her mother rang in her head. That did it. With a heavy heart she decided that she would
not go back to Hogwarts this year.

Next morning Robert and Diana had expectant look on their faces. As Hermione sat down for
breakfast tears started flowing again. She nodded towards her parents who understood at once.
Robert hugged her daughter and patted her back. Hermione calmed down within a few minutes. As she
looked up Robert spoke.

“It’s not the end of the world Hermione. This is only temporary. Once the danger recedes you can
go back to the magical world. But the problem at the moment is that since you are Harry Potter’s
friend and Voldemort is after him, you are already in danger. So we have to decide what to do about
that,” he said. Hermione didn’t say anything. She wanted to defend Harry but didn’t.

“Robert as you said last night, what about us leaving this place and going off to some other
country for sometime. Let’s say… for a year. After that we can see how the situation is and decide
if we want to extend or return. Since we have our private clinic we needn’t worry about our jobs.
We have enough savings to last us for years. The three of us haven’t had a vacation alone for many
years. We can treat this as an extended vacation,” Diana added.

“That’s not a bad idea Diana. I have a cousin living in Rome. We can go there. That is if
Hermione agrees with this plan,” Robert replied. Hermione thought about it. She wouldn’t be meeting
Harry, Ron or any of the others anyway. Maybe going out with her parents would help her to keep her
mind away from magic. Owls were no longer a safe mode to communicate. So she wouldn’t be able to
write to them either.

“That’s fine dad,” Hermione replied.

“Great. I’ll make plans. We’d probably be ready to leave tonight or tomorrow morning. You and
your mum can start packing. You’ve been a very mature girl Hermione. I’m proud of you,” Robert said
with a smile on his face.

As Hermione was back in her room she thought about the whole thing. Though she was very sad
about leaving her friends and her world behind she thought that all this was happening for the
better. She needed to let someone know. Ron and the Weasleys would be busy with Bill’s wedding
coming up. So she started a letter to Harry. It would be the last letter she wrote for a very long
time.

*Dear Harry,*

*I have some news about myself which I suspect you will not like. This year my parents finally
wanted to know about my life at Hogwarts. I told them everything. They got really scared on hearing
about all our adventures. In fact they were so worried, now that Voldemort is around; they advised
me not to go back to Hogwarts this year. I obviously wanted to go back but seeing their concern I
just couldn’t say no. They really care for me and wouldn’t do anything to hurt me deliberately. So
I’ve decided not to go back.*

*That’s not the end of it though. Being muggle born I am in danger anyway. So we are going off
to another country for sometime. I won’t say where, incase the letter is intercepted. Dad said
we’ll be away for a year but from his expression I could make out that it would be more. I don’t
think we’ll be back till the time this place is safe (i.e. Voldemort is around). We will leave
tonight or tomorrow morning. Please do not send me owls ‘there’ as they may be followed but I would
love your reply before I leave. I know I’m being overcautious but I want that my parents’ purpose
of keeping me safe to be fulfilled. So this is the last letter you’ll get from me before I
leave.*

*Harry I know, I promised to follow you to the final battle but circumstances have changed. My
parents have done so much for me that I just had to respect their wishes. I’m terribly sorry for
this. It tore my heart to make this decision. I feel like I’m acting like a scared mouse that is
hiding away while the others face war. I hope you you’ll understand. If it weren’t for my parents I
would have fought with everybody till victory was achieved or death conquered me. Please don’t
think badly of me. I won’t be able to bear it. I’ve not informed anyone else so please pass the
information to Ron, the Weasleys and McGonagall.*

*Finally I’d like to wish you all the best for the battle ahead. You’ve got it in you to
survive this. You can and you will kill him. Everyone is on your side. Remember that you have ‘the
power he knows not’. Hopefully we’ll meet again and I’ll be proud of you for saving the world.
Please give my regards to everyone else. I apologize once again.*

*Love Hermione*

*** *** *** ***

Harry had just entered his room after his evening walk when he saw a letter on the desk. The
neat handwriting told him that it was from Hermione. He tore it open and read it in amazement. He
reread it just to make sure he was not dreaming. He put it down and his mind traveled back to the
previous year. He and Hermione certainly had grown apart. During his sixth year at Hogwarts he had
hardly spent anytime with her. But before that she was almost like a part of him. He couldn’t do
without her suggestions and inputs. Despite last year they were still very good friends. From the
letter he knew that it was a really tough choice for her. Suddenly his memories gave way to slight
anger. Why was she doing this? He banged his table and sat down. She was a grown up person and
could make her own decisions. He was nobody to interfere with her life. He was so frustrated by
this that he didn’t even bother to reply. Perhaps it wouldn’t be too difficult to forget her. So
the sixth year did have its share of benefits. But as he lay down on his bed his mind traveled back
to his fourth year at Hogwarts.

*------Begin flashback-------*

*Harry got up from his bed and wondered what was wrong. Then it came back to him. The previous
day his name had popped out of the goblet of fire. The whole school including Ron, his best friend,
thought that he was a cheat. The dangers of the tournament didn’t even come into his mind. The only
person he hadn’t spoken to was Hermione. If she didn’t believe him he would be isolated. As he
walked down to the great hall he saw her coming out with some toast for him. She wanted to talk to
him away from everyone else. A sense of relief swept through his body .It was amazing. He wanted to
hug her but continued to walk with her. When he told her that he didn’t put his name into the
goblet, she believed him at once.*

*In a few days time he found out that the first task would be dragons. Mad Eye Moody had
hinted him to use his broom. But he needed to learn the summoning charm to get it. For that he once
again needed Hermione. She taught him with tremendous patience. She stayed awake late to help him.
She encouraged him when he got frustrated. Without her support he would have been nowhere.*

*Finally after the first task it was she who seemed the happiest. She had tried to get him and
Ron together all the time. When it finally happened she couldn’t control her emotions. Though Ron
was his friend again, she continued to take the lead in finding out about how to stay under water
for an hour and how to get past the creatures in the maze.*

*There was one thing which touched him the most. Before the second task she had told him, ‘I’m
scared for you’. It made feel like somebody actually cared for him. He had no parents of course. He
knew he had plenty of well wishers in the wizarding world but this was the first time somebody had
said it aloud.*

*------End flashback------*

Harry wiped his forehead. He couldn’t let something like this happen and not do anything about
it. The Dursleys were out for dinner with the Masons. He crept downstairs and looked up the
directory of doctors which was near the phone. He hoped that he could find Hermione’s phone number.
Luckily he found it. He dialed the number and waited for the response.

“Hello, Diana Granger on the line,” a voice spoke.

“Good evening, may I speak to Hermione,” Harry asked politely.

“Actually she’s gone out with her father to buy a few things. May I know who is on the line,”
Diana asked.

“This is Harry. Harry Potter,” replied Harry.

“Oh we’ve heard so much about you Harry. Hermione can’t stop speaking about you. You must have
called up about our move away,” Diana said.

“Yes I just read her letter. It took me completely by surprise,” said Harry.

“It would be hard on you. Hermione certainly had a very tough time. I’m sorry for this but her
safety is our prime concern. I hope you’ll understand,” Diana said in a sad voice.

“Yes I do. I just wanted to speak to her. Maybe I’ll call after a while,” said Harry.

“Yes that would be okay. No wait…… I think I can hear her coming in…… Hermione! Harry’s on the
phone,” Diana said, giving the phone to her daughter.

“Hi Harry. I was so disappointed not to get a reply from you. You aren’t angry with me are you?”
she asked.

“No Hermione, I’m not angry with you. But are you sure about what you are doing?” Harry said,
hoping he didn’t sound rude.

“Harry I have to do this for my parents. They love me. This is the least I could do. Please
don’t be mad. It was difficult but I’ve made up my mind,” she said firmly.

“If you’re so certain I won’t stop you. So I guess its goodbye then. Take care of yourself. Hope
we meet again sometime,” Harry said, finding it difficult to keep his voice normal.

“Thanks Harry. Your approval means a lot to me. We will definitely meet again. Good luck for the
battle. I’ll miss you very much,” Hermione sobbed.

“I’ll miss you too. Goodbye,” said Harry, keeping the phone down. His eyes were watery. He went
back to his room. Another memory of Hermione, during their fifth year flashed through his mind.

*------Begin flashback----*

*Harry and Hermione had just escaped the centaurs and Dolores Umbridge. They were soon joined
by Ron, Neville, Ginny and Luna. All of them had to decide which was the best way to save Sirius.
Hermione seemed convinced that it was a trap laid by Voldemort and Sirius was perfectly fine.
Considering her level of intelligence she was probably right. But Harry’s mind was not functioning
properly. All he wanted to do was to go to the department of mysteries to make sure Sirius was
safe. He made his intentions very clear. Ron immediately agreed to go with him. Hermione stopped
them insisting that it was a trap. In his desperation he shouted at Hermione. He expected her to
walk away in a huff but she did the most surprising thing. She decided to go with them. If she knew
that it was a trap why was she going? Why did she want to endanger her life? Harry didn’t have time
to ponder over all this. He had to reach Sirius. Ginny, Neville and Luna also insisted on
coming.*

*On arriving at the ministry they found out that Hermione had been right all along. Harry
cursed himself for getting his friends into such danger. If only he had listened to Hermione. Now
they were facing a battle with the deatheaters and were outnumbered two to one. His friends fought
heroically. But there was one moment Harry’s mind went blank. The deatheater named Dohlov had hit
Hermione, who crumpled to the floor. Harry couldn’t think what to do. When Neville told him that he
could feel her pulse an amazing sense of relief came over him. They were still in a very difficult
situation but hearing those words from Neville was fantastic. Harry thought he could conquer
anything in the world.*

*The night ended in tragedy with Sirius’ death. Sirius along with other members of the order
had come to help the students. Harry held himself responsible for this. But he was thankful that he
hadn’t lost any of his friends. He had almost lost Hermione. He couldn’t imagine what it would be
like if she was killed.*

*------End flashback----*

It was quite late at night. Harry imagined that the Dursleys would have returned by now. Over
the past few days he hadn’t slept very well due to Dumbledore’s death. Today however there was
absolutely no sign of sleep. He kept thinking about Hermione and the time they had spent together.
He just couldn’t get her out of his head. He drank some water before shutting his eyes. Slowly he
drifted into an uneasy sleep.

*“I hope everything is in order. Master will be furious if anything goes wrong,” a man
spoke.*

*“Of course everything is fine. What could possibly go wrong now? The most difficult part is
over” a woman replied.*

*“Yes it is. The girl turned out easier to handle than what I imagined. I thought she’d
scream, shout and maybe even run away,” the man said.*

*“You know good people are easy to fool. She got totally taken in by us. I must say we did
very well. Master will be pleased. He’s sure to reward us,” the woman said, with a smile on her
face.*

*“When does the portkey activate? I don’t want to be here much longer. Why couldn’t you set it
up for an earlier time?” the man asked.*

*“You’ll always remain a coward. Stop being nervous. I have everything under control. The
portkey will activate in an hour. I just wish master would let us kill the girl and get over with
it. That would have been really satisfying,” the woman replied.*

*“You know master enjoys killing. And she is very special. He would never let anyone else kill
her. In fact he’ll punish us severely if we killed her,” the man said.*

Harry was sweating. It was after a long time he had such a dream. Who were these people and who
was the girl they were planning to kill? Of course they were supporters of Voldemort but who? Could
this be another trap? He tried to think carefully. This dream seemed more like the one he had had
about Mr. Weasley than the one about Sirius. So it was probably true. But what was he to do about
it? How could he save this girl? He recollected the dream and realized something which made his
body grow numb. He knew the voice of the woman.

He rushed downstairs to the telephone and pressed the redial button hoping that the Dursleys
hadn’t made any late night phone calls. He waited with baited breath as the phone rang.

“Hello, Hermione Granger on the line,” said Hermione in a tired voice. She had not gone to sleep
as they were about to leave.

“Hermione, this is Harry. Don’t ask any questions. Just tell me your home address. Be quick,”
Harry said quickly, as his heartbeat increased.

“Harry what is the meaning of all this? If you…,” she started, but was cut off by Harry.

“Hermione, I WANT YOUR ADDRESS!! There’s danger,” Harry shouted.

“It’s 24-A Haverford Road, Chatham. But what is…,” she started again, but was cut off again.

“Which room are you in at the moment?” asked Harry, hurriedly.

“I’m in……Ouch!!.....Aaaah….Ohhhhhh…..” was all that Harry could hear before the line
disconnected.



2. No More Waiting
------------------

**A/N: Thank you to all those who reviewed. I had 600 reads and 12 reviews. I’m sure you can do
better than that. Come on! It will only take you half a minute but for me it’ll be worth a fortune.
Constructive criticism is very welcome.**

**Some of you must have felt that it was unlike Hermione to accept her parents’ demands. Just
remember that like any other seventeen year old she is very close to her parents. Her parents also
blackmailed her emotionally. It was very tough for her. There is also another reason which you’ll
find out later… much later. Anyway, I’m wasting too much time on the Author’s note. Here is the
next chapter for you all. And please remember to review.**

Chapter Two: No More Waiting

“Harry! What the hell are you doing with our telephone? Don’t you know that these things are not
meant for your types!!” shouted Vernon Dursley, as he came down the stairs. He had heard Harry
screaming on the phone. Since it was dark he didn’t realize that Harry was not listening to a word
he spoke. Harry was busy thinking what to do. The portkey would activate in less than half an hour.
The deatheaters already had Hermione and knew that she had spoken to him. He had to reach
Hermione’s house. Though he hadn’t passed his apparation test yet, this was an emergency. With a
crack he disappeared leaving Uncle Vernon gaping at the empty space in front of him.

Harry landed in the lawn in front of Hermione’s house. It was pitched dark. There seemed to be
no lights in the house. His heart sank. It looked like he’d arrived too late. He didn’t dare to use
‘Lumos’ because then the enemy would be easily able to spot him. With a quiet ‘Alohamora’ he
unlocked the front door. His eyes fell on something which made him go tense. A wand was lying on
the floor. One look at it and he knew it was Hermione’s wand. As he thought about what he should do
he heard noises upstairs. He was relieved. At least there was somebody in the house. He picked up
Hermione’s wand and placed it in his back pocket. Very cautiously he started moving up the stairs.
Just as he reached the top the whole house lightened. All bulbs were burning. In front of him he
saw a man and a woman, the same ones as in the dream. Between them stood Hermione, looking very
scared. She was shaking. The woman had her wand pointed at her head. The sight made his blood
boil.

“So Potter has come to play the hero again,” the man said sarcastically.

“Leave her alone. It is me your master wants,” Harry replied, sounding very angry.

“Actually you are wrong Potter. Master wants her, not you. At least not at the moment. I know
he’ll finish you off when the time comes but currently you are safe. That is if you wish to be.
Just go off and we won’t harm you,” the man said.

“If you think I’m going to leave, I have news for you. I’m going to stay right here until you
let Hermione go. Now you leave her or I’ll…,” started Harry but the man didn’t let him finish.

“Or you’ll do what Potter? Think I’m scared of you? Okay, it seems obvious that you are not
going to listen to my peaceful solution. So I’m ordering you now. Drop your wand or I’ll kill the
girl. Drop it right now! I’ll count till three. One… Two… Three…,” the man said in a very loud
voice.

“Surprised, aren’t you? How come a sixteen year old boy didn’t obey your orders? Well, I’ll give
you the answer. You’ll be punished within an inch of your life if you killed Hermione. It’s
Voldemort’s hobby to kill, isn’t it?” Harry said in a mocking tone.

“How dare you speak master’s name? You filthy halfblood!” the man spoke with rage.

“Might I remind you that VOLDEMORT is a halfblood himself? How do you think he’ll react if he
gets to know you called him filthy?” Harry asked, still undaunted.

“Forget all this now. I’m not here to answer your idiotic questions. Master will deal with you
himself when the time comes. I can’t kill the girl but I certainly can hurt her. Do you remember
how the Cruciatus curse felt, Potter? Want me to try that on your friend? Put your wand down at
once,” the man commanded.

Harry couldn’t think of anything else to do. He dropped his wand without a word.

“That’s better. Now move ten steps back,” the man said. As Harry did, the man turned to the
woman and asked, “How much time left for the portkey to activate?”

Harry knew this was his chance. The man had his back to him while the woman was looking at the
man. Very quietly he moved his hand to his back pocket and took out Hermione’s wand. Though the man
was the easier target, he had to attack the woman first. She was closer to Hermione.

“Expelliarmus!” shouted Harry. The woman was taken by total surprise and was thrown back. The
wand slipped out of her hand. The man couldn’t understand what had happened. He barely had enough
time to turn around before…

“Expelliarmus!” shouted Harry again. The effect was the same. Hermione acted with great agility.
Before anyone could make any move, she picked up the three wands lying on the floor and rushed
towards Harry.

“Now tell me who you are or I’ll hurt you very badly. Quick!” shouted Harry.

“Harry, please don’t hurt them. They could be my parents under the Imperious curse,” interjected
Hermione.

“They aren’t Hermione. Can’t you see that they have their wands and are capable of doing magic?
It’s polyjuice potion most probably,” said Harry.

“Then where are my parents?” wailed Hermione.

“We’ll find them,” said Harry confidently, putting an arm around Hermione to comfort her. As the
two of them were talking they did not notice something shining in the corner of the room.

“Will you tell me who you are?” Harry said sternly to the man. He didn’t notice the woman take a
few steps to the right.

“Jump for the portkey,” shouted the woman diving towards the shining object.

“Petrificus totalus,” Harry said pointing his wand at the man who froze immediately. Hermione
did the same thing to the woman but was too late. She had disappeared.

“Damn!” shouted Harry. He turned towards Hermione and said, “Apparate to the ministry right now
and get some aurors. Fast!” Hermione nodded and disappeared with a crack. Harry waited patiently
for her to return. He hoped more deatheaters wouldn’t come before help arrived. After ten minutes
he heard a series of cracking noises. Hermione had arrived with McGonagall, Lupin, Tonks, Kingsley
and a few others. Among them was Horace Slughorn with a tiny bottle in his hand.

“I think Veritaserum is the need of the hour. Hermione told us the whole story,” he said with a
smile.

“That’s right Horace. But we’ll wait till this man regains his original form. I think he’s
transforming now,” replied McGonagall seriously. Everybody waited anxiously to see who this man
was. Harry’s jaw dropped. He knew this man. All he wanted to do was to hex him into the next
century. Not only for what he did to his parents but for what he was planning on Hermione. He was
none other than Peter Pettigrew.

Slughorn put a few drops of Veritaserum into his mouth while McGonagall performed the counter
curse to unfreeze him. Four aurors held him tightly to where he was sitting.

“So Peter, who was your partner in crime,” asked Lupin.

“Narcissa Malfoy,” replied Peter without any expression.

“Why did your master want kill Miss Granger?” asked McGonagall.

“Master figured out the prophecy. He deduced that ‘the power he knows not’ was Potter’s ability
to love. Everyone knows that among females Granger is closest to Potter. So he came to the
conclusion that only with her help Potter could defeat him. He told me and Narcissa to take the
form of her parents and get her to him. He wanted to make sure that she wasn’t missed. So we
emotionally blackmailed her. People here would think that she was away but in reality master would
have killed her,” Peter replied. Harry and Hermione, who had turned red, were now gaping as they
heard Voldemort’s plan. It was a very clever plan indeed.

“Finally Peter, what have you done with Robert and Diana Granger? Surely they are somewhere
nearby as you would need their hair. How did you treat them?” Tonks asked.

“They are in the right hand side corner of the basement. They were frozen and covered with an
invisibility cloak. We gave them very little to eat. When Narcissa got bored she used to go and
whip them as they are mudbloods,” Peter said.

Hermione’s face grew white. She couldn’t move. McGonagall spoke urgently, “Remus, please
transfer Robert and Diana Granger to the nearest muggle hospital at once”.

Remus nodded. He rushed down to the basement, removed the invisibility cloak and conjured two
stretchers. The Grangers were in a really bad way. They were unconscious. There were whip marks all
over their body. They seemed very weak. Hermione couldn’t bear the sight in front of her. She
collapsed to the floor. Remus quickly arranged for an ambulance and went with them to the hospital.
Everybody else remained in the house. McGonagall took charge.

“The aurors will take Peter to the ministry where he will be kept under tight security. He will
have to face trial in a few weeks time. Make sure that the ministry takes enough precaution so that
he doesn’t transform or apparate. He may have very valuable information. Kingsley you will come
back to Hogwarts with me. I have something to discuss with you. Tonks, you will escort Harry and
Hermione to the hospital. I’m sure Miss Granger would like to know what happened to her parents,”
she commanded. Everyone nodded.

Harry, Hermione and Tonks were traveling in a muggle cab. Hermione didn’t say anything but Harry
could see a few tears streaking down her face. He didn’t disturb her. This was traumatic for her.
To think that she had spent the past couple of weeks in company of Peter Pettigrew and Narcissa
Malfoy made him shiver. He hoped that her parents would be okay. Remus met them at the
hospital.

“No news till now. The doctors are still at work. They should be out anytime now,” he said.
Everybody waited anxiously. In about five minutes the doctor came out. Hermione stood up.

“The news is not very good. Both of them are very weak. They have been put on glucose. They have
also lost a lot of blood. In fact Robert Granger requires blood transfusion. We have blood in our
bank but it would help if we could use fresh blood. That would stabilize the platelet count. Does
anyone here have B positive as his or her blood group?” the doctor spoke.

“That’s my blood group. I’ll be happy to help,” replied Harry quickly. The doctor nodded as he
and Harry walked away. They didn’t return for about half an hour.

“I have better news. Medically they are out of danger. It will take a long time for them to
regain full fitness but they will. However the mental trauma may take years to heal. I hope they
are mentally strong. That would go a long way in helping them recover. I expect them to regain
consciousness sometime tomorrow but they have to spend at least a week or ten days at the hospital.
You are all free to see them now. Both of them are in room number three twenty seven,” the doctor
said.

All of them visited the Grangers in their room. Though Hermione was relieved, she couldn’t help
crying at the sight of her parents. They all sat in the room. Remus took leave just as the sun had
started rising. Soon Kingsley walked him. Remus had told him about the Grangers’ condition.

“Minerva and I just had a talk. We have decided that Harry will come and live with Hermione till
such time as her parents return home. After that we’ll think about what to do. Remus, Tonks and I
have to ensure your safety but we won’t be staying with you. We are still not sure whether Hogwarts
will reopen. However both of you have to continue your work. You are allowed to use magic but
please don’t misuse it. Hermione is already past seventeen while Harry will be in two weeks. The
ministry has granted special permission for him. Since you two must be tired I suggest you go home
and rest. I’ll wait here. Hermione you can come back with Harry later in the day,” Kingsley
said.

Harry quickly apparated to his uncle’s place to pick up his things. This would most probably be
the last he would see his last living relatives. He didn’t even feel the slightest bit of
disappointment. These people meant nothing to him and he couldn’t care less if they lived or died.
He quietly bid farewell to them. Back at the hospital everyone was ready to leave. He and Hermione
apparated back to her house. Not a word was spoken. Harry decided to leave Hermione alone. She
needed a little bit of time to herself to get her mind together. She went into her room while Harry
took the guestroom. Both of them slept like logs.

On waking up late in the afternoon Harry heard noises downstairs. As he walked into the kitchen
he saw Hermione cooking. She looked up at him before speaking.

“I guess you are hungry. We haven’t eaten anything since last night. I cooked lunch for us
though it is quite late,” she said. Harry nodded.

“How are you feeling?” he asked gently.

“Much better. Things could have been worse,” she replied shortly. Both of them sat down to eat.
Hermione was a decent cook, so the food tasted pretty good.

“You know Harry; I never thanked you for everything you did. If it weren’t for you I and my
parents would probably be dead by now. You also gave blood for my dad. I don’t have enough words to
express my gratitude but thank you all the same,” Hermione said.

“You’re welcome. Thank goodness I arrived in time. You were great help. Your wand was very
important. Even your agility in picking up the three wands helped,” Harry replied. They ate their
lunch and left for the hospital. Kingsley left when they arrived. They had been there for a few
minutes when Diana began to stir. Hermione rushed up to her bed.

“No… don’t hit me… have mercy… and please don’t kill Hermione… aaah… Help!” Diana said as she
struggled in her bed.

“Mum, its okay. I’m here. They won’t hit you. The doctors say you and dad will be okay,”
Hermione said holding her mother’s hand.

“It that really you sweetie? I was so worried. They said they’ll kill you and leave us in the
basement to starve,” Diana said weakly. Harry walked up and stood besides Hermione.

“Mum I’d like you to meet my friend Harry. He saved all of us. He fought the two of them single
handed,” Hermione told her mother. Diana looked towards Harry and smiled slightly.

“It’s so nice to see you Harry. Hermione always speaks highly of you. Thank you saving us. I’m
sorry I can’t say much more now. I’m feeling drowsy again,” Diana said.

“That’s okay Mrs. Granger. I’m happy that all of you are going to be alright,” Harry replied. He
walked to his seat but Hermione kept standing besides her mother. The sight of their family in such
a state angered him. Just being his friend had put Hermione and her family in danger. As he had
found out he couldn’t just cut-off Hermione from his life. So he made up his mind about one thing.
He would kill Voldemort before he could inflict any more damage. There was no time to look for the
remaining horcruxes. He needed to find a way to destroy Voldemort fast. For that he needed to learn
more about horcruxes. He knew of just one place where he could find a book on this. Knockturn
Alley.

Next morning Hermione again went to the hospital but Harry excused himself. He apparated to
Knockturn Alley. Just being there gave him chills. This was clearly a place for dark wizards. That
was probably the reason nobody ever came here. However he found what he was looking for. In a very
old bookshop he came across the book ‘All you need to know about horcruxes’. When back at
Hermione’s house, he saw Hermione hadn’t yet returned. He started going through the book. One
portion particularly interested him.

*It is widely believed that until all the horcruxes of a person have been destroyed, he cannot
die. However this is not true. One of the horcrux is in the person’s body itself. This is called
the prime horcrux. This is the main soul of the person. If the person is killed the soul escapes
from his body and finds one of the horcruxes. It remains here until the body can be restored by
suitable methods. But the soul can be prevented from leaving the body by a special incantation
‘Nando’. The success of the casting of this spell can be made out if the body remains warm even
after the person is killed. The body then has to undergo the process of soul burning to ensure
death.*

*Soul burning requires a very complicated potion called the ‘Horcrew’. The recipe for this is
given later in the book. The body has to be shrunk and boiled in this potion for two hours. The
appearance of blood shows that the person is dead.*

Harry was very interested. Here was a way to end Voldemort fast. The only problem was Horcrew.
He needed Hermione to brew this potion. It was too difficult for him. So he had to let her into his
secret. He hoped that she would cooperate. Exactly that moment Hermione came in through the door.
She looked happy.

“Harry, both my parents are doing well. Dad got up this morning. Both of them can now drink
orally. My dad can’t wait to meet…,” she stopped on seeing the serious look on his face.

“I’m glad to hear that Hermione but I want to discuss something with you. This is strictly
confidential. You can’t open your mouth on this. Don’t speak until I finish,” he said. Both of them
sat down on the sofa as Harry told her his plans. She was really indignant but he wouldn’t let her
speak. Finally he showed her the book and the potion recipe.

“Can you manage this? Please answer me before you begin your protests”, he asked. Hermione
glanced through it.

“After polyjuice potion as a twelve year old this shouldn’t be very difficult. But Harry you
can’t go like this. You are far from ready to face him. What happened to my family has nothing to
do with you. In fact you saved all of us”, she said hurriedly.

“I’m not doing this for your family. All that happened made me look at things in a totally
different perspective. I will never be as strong as him. I’ve got to beat him mentally. I have some
ideas. Come on Hermione, your support is the only thing I can bank upon. If you desert me now then
there’s no hope for me. So are you willing to listen to my plans?” he asked. Hermione didn’t say
anything. He waited for her. At last she nodded.

“Harry I can’t lose you. I nearly lost my parents. I’m begging you not to go but if you decide
to go I’m with you. I’ll always support you,” she said quietly.

“Very good. That means a great deal to me. Now listen to my plan. Fighting with Peter and
Narcissa gave me this idea. Voldemort and my wands are made from the feather of the same phoenix.
So if our spells collide with each other midway Priori Incantatem takes place. I’ll make sure that
happens. So both of us will be stuck. I’ll have your wand in my back pocket. To make the plan
foolproof, I’ll put the disillusionment charm on your wand. I’ll take that wand out and use it to
disarm him. Once he is disarmed things shouldn’t be too difficult. You’ll have to be ready here
with Horcrew. Once I return we’ll perform the soul burning,” Harry said.

“You make it sound easier than it is. But yes, it definitely is a good plan. How are you going
to get to him though?” she asked.

“Even I was thinking of that. Peter revealed during his investigation that Voldemort’s
headquarter is at the Riddle House. He’s placed anti-apparation charms around that area and there
are plenty of deatheaters guarding the house. Getting to him will be a tough task. I wish you could
suggest something,” Harry said.

“I thought of something but it’s dangerous”, replied Hermione.

“Let’s hear it,” said Harry enthusiastically.

“The deatheaters will not stop you if you go in pretending to be one of them. Yes, I’m talking
about Peter. You can use polyjuice potion. It’s risky but worth a try. Of course you’ll first need
to apparate to a nearby area and then walk up to the house,” Hermione replied.

“You’re a genius Hermione. I don’t know what I’d do without you,” replied Harry. He hugged her
before continuing, “We have a busy day tomorrow. You’ll go to Diagon Alley to buy readymade
polyjuice potion and the ingredients of Horcrew. I’ll pay a visit to our friend Peter.”

Next morning Harry and Hermione left home at the same time. Hermione apparated to Diagon Alley.
Harry went to the ministry. He had to sign a few papers before he was allowed to meet Peter. Peter
was bound heavily with iron chains and was kept in a small dark room.

“It’s time for payback Peter,” said Harry cutting a few strands of his hair.

“Why would want my hair? Surely you won’t use that in a polyjuice potion,” Peter asked, in a
squeaky voice.

“Actually I will. It’s time I removed the last signs of Voldemort. Unfortunately to get into the
Riddle House I’ll have to go in your form. Don’t think I’m very pleased to take up your disgusting
form,” replied Harry. Peter started babbling but nothing coherent came out.

“You’ll meet the same sticky end as your parents Potter. The Dark Lord will finish you off in no
time. All the best! I won’t even bother mentioning about this to anyone else. They’d only stop you
from going,” said Peter with a smile.

“You know Peter, however fond I may be of my parents; I think they made one big mistake. They
trusted a person like you. When I met you three years back all I wanted to do was to kill you. But
now my feeling is that a simple Avada Kedavra will be too kind on you. You deserve pain and
torture. Azkaban is awaiting you and that in quite a good start. This time they are making sure you
can’t transform. So unlike Sirius you’ll face everything in your… I don’t know if I should call it
human form. You are no human. Goodbye now, I’ll meet you after finishing off you master,” said
Harry and walked out of the room.

When he reached home Hermione was already there. She had got everything from Diagon Alley. She
handed Harry the small bottle of polyjuice potion. Together they had a late lunch together. They
didn’t speak much. Harry spoke when they had finished eating.

“I guess this is it then. I should get going now,” he said softly.

“I thought you’d go in the evening. Didn’t you say you’d like to take him on in the night?”
Hermione asked.

“Yes I’d thought that. But I think that it would be better if we did the Horcrew part in the
night. Then it would be discrete. Make sure the potion is ready by night,” Harry replied. Hermione
kept quiet for sometime.

“I wish you wouldn’t go Harry. I know you won’t allow me to come with you but at least you could
have taken a few aurors,” she said tearing up.

“Hermione you know I have to do this. If I tell anybody else they wouldn’t let me go. Both of us
have thought out a very good plan. I don’t see any reason Voldemort won’t be dead before sunrise
tomorrow,” he paused, “I should mention this. In case I fail in my attempt, my entire fortune is to
be divided between you and Ron,” he added. Hermione was crying freely now.

“I don’t want your fortune Harry, I want you. You will kill him. I know you will. You have
everything you need. I wasn’t just being polite in that letter. Promise me you’ll come back,” she
cried, hugging him tightly. Harry was pained. He couldn’t see her like this. He didn’t know how to
act.

“I will try my very best to come back to you. Now I think it is getting late. I should leave.
Goodbye for now. I’ll see you soon,” he said. He started walking away.

“Wait Harry,” said Hermione loudly. Harry stopped. Hermione took off the necklace she was
wearing. She put it around Harry’s neck and said, “My parents gave this to me before I left for
Hogwarts. They said it would protect me. Today I’m giving it to you. It’ll protect you from the
dark forces. You’ll win Harry. I have full confidence in you”.

Harry crushed her in a bear hug. He felt lucky that he had a friend like Hermione. His own tears
were flowing now. He knew that he had to win the battle for her. “I will win,” he thought aloud.
Hermione looked up.

“This is for luck,” she said and kissed him on the lips.



3. The Final Battle
-------------------

**A/N: Here’s the next chapter for you. I finished it a day earlier than expected. The much
awaited confrontation between Harry and Voldemort takes place in this. If anyone feels I should
increase the rating of the story, please let me know. A very big thank you to all those who
reviewed.**

Chapter Three: The Final Battle

Harry apparated to Winston Lake which was the nearest place to the Riddle House one could
apparate to. The place seemed too quiet for comfort. Not even a bird’s chirp or a car’s engine
could be heard. There did not seem to be any people around. Harry had calculated that it would take
him more than an hour to get to Voldemort’s headquarters. So he didn’t drink the polyjuice potion
yet. He wanted to face Voldemort in his real form. As he walked he saw noticed the air grew
chillier. There seemed to be a slight fog. Still there was no sign of life. Finally Harry drank the
potion. He felt himself transform. A small bald patch appeared on his head. It disgusted him to
take Peter’s form but there was no other way. He cast the disillusionment charm on Hermione’s wand
and kept it in his back pocket. He wore the dark robes and the mask. He hoped that he looked evil
enough even though nobody could see his face. The Riddle House was now in sight.

“Alohamora!” he said quietly on reaching the door. There was no effect. Clearly Voldemort had
very tight security. He knocked on the door. He waited with heart beating fast as he heard
footsteps approaching.

“Care to explain why you are here and who you are?” a man asked opening the door. He too wore a
mask and Harry could not see his face. His voice didn’t sound familiar.

“Peter Pettigrew at the service of the Dark Lord,” replied Harry.

“What! How did you escape? Surely you aren’t clever enough for that,” the man said in
surprise.

“If I can frame an innocent person and hide away as a rat for twelve years, a stupid ministry
can’t stop me from escaping,” Harry replied, feigning a squeaky voice like Peter’s.

“Master will kill you. He already has driven Narcissa mad with the repeated use of the Cruciatus
curse. You will get a worse deal. At least she had managed to escape and not spill any of our
secrets. I would advice you to run away,” the man said in a worried voice. Harry understood that
Voldemort treated his followers with just as much cruelty as his foes. There was fear in this man’s
voice. He couldn’t believe it but he felt sorry for the deatheaters. However this was not a time to
dwell on such matters.

“How dare you! I would never turn my back on master! You should be ashamed of yourself. I did
not spill any beans. I got away before they could interrogate me. And after master hears the news I
have brought he’ll reward me,” shouted Harry.

“Very well! If that’s what you want to do, go ahead. Don’t tell me I didn’t warn you. Show me
your arm now,” said the man.

“Er… Why?” Harry asked, confused.

“Surely you haven’t forgotten the rules of this place during your days of captivity. I’m
supposed to check the Dark Mark,” the man replied. Harry felt his heart stop. The Dark Mark was a
bond of blood. Of course his arm showed it but if this man did a magical check with a wand he would
be caught.

“Oh right, how silly of me,” said Harry nervously, extending his hand. Luckily for him the man
took one glance at it before turning his eyes away. Harry sighed in relief. His plan had nearly
failed at this point.

“What’s all this noise and who are you?” asked a woman coming into the room. Harry recognized
this voice at once. It was Sirius’ murderer Bellatrix Lestrange. She looked towards Harry.

“Peter,” replied Harry shortly. It took every ounce of his will power not to attack
Bellatrix.

“Since when have you started calling yourself that? You were always Wormtail,” she asked, not
expressing any surprise on his return. Harry thought quickly. He needed to find some excuse.

“Wormtail was a name given by my stupid friends at Hogwarts. I’m way above them now. In fact
only one of them is still alive. That nasty werewolf! I’m Peter from now on,” Harry replied.

“That’s good to hear. I always knew you’d come back. After all you framed that good for nothing
cousin of mine. The fool was taunting me. I gave him what he deserved,” Bellatrix laughed. Harry
clenched his fist in anger. He couldn’t blow it up now. He saw Bellatrix as a good source for
getting to Voldemort. She seemed to have a ‘soft corner’ as far as he was concerned.

“Bella, though I did my best, I’m certain that master would be angry at me. After all I failed
in the task which was assigned to me. Do you think you could come with me now? I want to meet him,”
he asked in a frightened voice.

“I can’t promise how master will treat you but if you want moral support, I’ll come with you,”
she said. Voldemort’s supporters seemed to be a family themselves. Had they not turned to evil they
could have been quite nice people. Harry nodded towards Bellatrix as they started walking. They
came to a large door. Bellatrix asked him to wait outside. She herself went in.

“Master will see you in a short while. He’ll call you inside. If you really have important news
he’ll spare you,” she said, coming out of the door. Harry was again surprised. He had always
thought of deatheaters as cruel and heartless. Within themselves they seemed to be very friendly.
It was due to them that he had got to Voldemort so easily. He waited patiently outside the door.
The effect of his polyjuice potion would be over in seven minutes. Though he had some extra in his
pocket, he didn’t want to use it. It would take another hour for it to wear off and he wanted to
face Voldemort as Harry Potter. Things had gone really smoothly up to now. He hoped that the battle
would go off as planned. Just then he felt his body changing. Also the door opened and Voldemort’s
hiss was heard.

“Come in Wormtail… or should I say Peter,” he said.

“Master! Glad to be back with you,” said Harry, careful not to give his voice away.

“So what is it you have to tell me? It had better be something big or you’ve had it. I’ve never
let people who have failed me get away. You are lucky that I’m even speaking to you,” said
Voldemort, icily.

“Master I’m very obliged for this. I promise you when you hear the news…,” started Harry but was
cut off.

“Whatever you have to say, say it fast. I don’t have all day. Don’t think you’ll get away by
buying time like this,” shouted Voldemort.

“I have brought Harry Potter with me, master,” said Harry.

“Don’t play the fool with me Peter! I’ve had enough of you. You’re a worthless, coward, good for
nothing…,” said Voldemort before Harry raised his hand. Voldemort looked livid.

“Peter, how dare you raise your hand in front of me? Nobody can disrespect me. You need to be
taught a lesson,” Voldemort said, taking out his wand.

“But master I’m not joking. Harry Potter is right here. He will meet you whenever you wish,”
Harry replied trying to sound frightened.

“If you say so… I want to see him NOW!” Voldemort shouted.

“Have it your way… VOLDEMORT!” said Harry in an equally loud voice and took of his mask. This
was it. Voldemort looked like he’d seen a ghost. He made no move for a few seconds. Harry was
tempted to finish him right there but decided to stick to his plan. Voldemort recovered
quickly.

“After I finish with you Potter, I’ll have to teach my fellow deatheaters a few lessons. I’m
clearly not being harsh enough with them. Very foolish of you to come like this. You may have
fooled my stupid servants but honestly do you think you stand a chance against me?” he said
mockingly.

“I seem to remember you teaching me to bow before a duel. Now bow and then WE DUEL” shouted
Harry, bowing slightly. Voldemort laughed before giving a short bow himself.

“Avada Kedavra,” Voldemort said. Harry saw a green streak leaving Voldemort’s wand. In normal
circumstances he or anyone else would have moved away. But today’s circumstances were not normal.
He was waiting for Voldemort to make this move. He carefully took aim at the green streak. The
slightest of errors could have been fatal.

“Expelliarmus,” roared Harry, not wanting to try a complex spell in case it failed. It had the
desired effect. The red streak from his wand connected with the green one. Both Harry and
Voldemort’s hands started shaking violently. They both rose of the floor. Plenty of shadows started
coming out of this connection. These were the people Voldemort had recently killed. Harry shuddered
at the thought that Hermione’s shadow could have been in front of him if Peter and Narcissa had
succeeded. But he had to finish a job now. He picked out Hermione’s wand from his back pocket.
Since it was camouflaged, Voldemort could not make out make out what he was doing.

Harry acted quickly. He first cast a strong locking charm on the door. He didn’t want the
deatheaters to find out about his presence in the house. He would have a difficult time in escaping
if he was chased by numerous deatheaters. Then he cast the silencing charm in the room. By this the
noises within the room would not be heard outside. He took a deep breath and took aim at
Voldemort’s hand.

“Expelliarmus!” shouted Harry. The wand flew of Voldemort’s hand. It was still connected to
Harry’s wand by Priori Incantatem. Harry broke the connection, before yelling, “Accio wand”.
Voldemort’s wand floated towards him. With his seeker reflexes he had no trouble catching it.
Voldemort stood, watching all this, amazed.

“See how much time it took me to disarm you. Now it’ll take me even less time to finish you off.
Prepare to die,” said Harry coolly. To his surprise Voldemort laughed.

“That was quite a plan Potter. I’m impressed. Had you been on my side, you could have been a
great strategist. But however good you maybe, you wouldn’t have kept this in mind,” said Voldemort.
To Harry’s horror, Voldemort disappeared and in his place stood a short black snake. It was a king
cobra.

Harry had certainly not kept this in mind. He had no idea that Voldemort was an Animagus. The
king cobra was deadly with its highly poisonous fangs. Worse still, it was immune to almost all the
curses, spells and hexes. The snake slithered towards Harry, showing its fangs. Harry had to run.
One by one by he started throwing every spell he knew at the cobra. They had absolutely no effect.
Only Expelliarmus threw it back a couple of feet but didn’t seem to cause any pain.

Harry was getting tired with all the running. He had to periodically cast the disarming spell to
make the snake stay away from him. Since none of the spells were working, he decided on trying the
unforgivable curses. He first tried the killing curse. The green light just vanished as it touched
the snake. Harry grew nervous. He was panting. If he didn’t think of anything soon, it would be
curtains. Hoping for better luck he tried the Imperious curse. Again the snake’s body seemed to
absorb the curse. Now Harry was frantic. The unforgivable curses seemed to be useless. He didn’t
see any sense in trying the Cruciatus curse. Probably the snake would just eat it up like rest of
them. However it was his last hope. With his speed slowing down he looked back. The cobra had
gained a lot of ground.

“Crucio!” Harry screamed, as he fell to the floor totally drained out. He was prepared for the
worst. He expected the cobra to bite him all over. When he felt nothing, he looked towards the
cobra. It was absolutely still. Before Harry had a chance to think, it started writhing. Clearly
Harry’s curse had worked. Seeing the agony of the snake made him realize that the Cruciatus curse
affected a snake worse than humans. Probably this was the reason Voldemort transformed back to
himself.

“Petrificus Totalus,” shouted Harry as soon as he saw Voldemort in his original form. He had
done it. Voldemort was petrified in his human form. He could no longer transform. All Harry needed
to do was to say the two words with hatred. This was when doubts starting coming to his mind. If he
said ‘Avada Kedavra’ he would become a murderer. Though Voldemort was evil, Harry couldn’t help
feeling this. As far as he was concerned only dark wizards killed using Avada Kedavra. The only
instance he knew of somebody from their side using the killing curse was Dumbledore, who had killed
Grindelwald. Dumbledore was a great wizard. Harry wondered if he was great enough to kill somebody.
Was he great…was he great…was he great?

*------Begin Flashback----*

*It was Harry, Ron and Hermione’s first year at Hogwarts. They thought that Snape was going to
try and steal the Philosopher’s Stone. They decided to go after him. They had got past Fluffy, the
three headed dog, Devil’s Snare, the flying keys, McGonagall’s chessboard and had reached the seven
bottles containing potions. Ron was injured in getting past the chessboard. Hermione was quickly
able to infer which bottle contained the potion to go ahead and which one had the one to go back.
It was now time for Harry and Hermione to part ways. It was decided Harry would go ahead while
Hermione would go back. Hermione was extremely worried for Harry. He was taken by total surprise as
she suddenly dashed and threw her arms around him.*

*“Harry you’re a great wizard, you know,” she said.*

*“I’m not as good as you,” said Harry, very embarrassed, as she finally let go of him.*

*“Me! You think books and cleverness means great. You have so much more than that Harry.
Gryffindor’s courage, Ravenclaw’s wisdom, Hufflepuff’s loyalty and Slytherin’s desire to succeed.
You have it all in you. No wonder the sorting hat had such a tough time with you,” Hermione said,
still sounding worried.*

*“Thanks for the words of encouragement. But really I’m not that great. I couldn’t help what
happened with Voldemort last time,” Harry replied.*

*“Whatever it is, you are a great wizard Harry. Just remember that and you’ll be okay,” said
Hermione, firmly.*

*------End Flashback----*

This memory gave Harry the confidence he needed. Hermione thought that he was a great wizard and
that was good enough. The doubts he had, left him. He took one last glance at the frozen Voldemort.
With hands firm, he spoke the final words putting every bit of hatred he felt into them.

“Avada Kedavra!” he shouted. Voldemort’s body fell to the floor.

“Nando!” he screamed again. The spell seemed to have worked. Normally immediately after the
Avada Kedavra the body became cold. However Voldemort’s body was still warm. Harry wanted to sigh
in relief but he knew that the job was only half done. He had to return to Hermione’s house and
kill Voldemort’s soul. He took out some blood from Voldemort’s body. This was part of his plan.
Then he shrunk the body using a shrinking charm. It was small enough to fit in his pocket. With the
blood he wrote a message for the deatheaters.

*Gone to teach Wormtail a lesson. Anybody who comes after me will be dealt with harshly. He
has been a fool. I do not forgive. Beware!*

It would seem to the deatheaters that the message had been written with Peter’s blood. So they
would understand Voldemort’s fury and let him be alone. Now Harry cast the disillusionment charm on
himself. He walked out of the room slowly. The main door of the house was locked. As he’d seen
before ‘Alohamora’ didn’t work on it. So he had to wait until somebody opened the door and he could
slip out. Since it was late in the evening, it was unlikely anybody would get out. He waited.

An hour passed… two hours passed. Harry was getting frustrated. The deatheaters had read his
message and seemed to have taken it seriously. If he didn’t get out by the next morning they would
get suspicious about Voldemort’s disappearance. He had to think of a plan again. After forty five
minutes he was able to think of a vague procedure for escape. It was certainly worth a try. Making
sure nobody was around he banged on the door.

The same man who had answered the door for him came to open it again. Harry cast the silencing
charm on his legs. In this way his footsteps would not be heard. The man opened the door. Obviously
there was nobody outside.

“Who’s there?” he said aloud. Harry took this chance to slip out of the door. He didn’t move in
case his shoes made any marks on the ground. The man waited for a minute before finally shutting
the door. Harry started walking back to Winston Lake. He wanted to run but his legs ached from all
the running he had done with the snake. It took him almost ninety minutes to reach there. Once he
got there, he apparated immediately.

Hermione had fallen asleep in the sofa. She had waited for Harry but the day’s exertion had
taken its toll on her. Suddenly she was awakened by a loud crack. She wondered where she was. She
looked around. To her joy, she saw Harry standing in her living room.

“Harry! You did it! I was so worried. I wish I could help you. Please tell…,” she stopped midway
and hugged Harry tightly.

“You did help me. If it weren’t for your memory I wouldn’t have been able to kill him. I’ll
elaborate later. First things first. Do you have Horcrew ready?” Harry asked, hurriedly.

“Yes, it’s in the kitchen,” replied Hermione. Both of them walked to the kitchen. Hermione lit
the fire as Harry took the shrunken Voldemort’s body out of his pocket and threw it into the
potion. Harry told about his adventures to Hermione while the potion boiled.

“You were extremely clever in planning your escape. We should have thought about that before.
The cobra must have been a total surprise. You did well with him too. If you paid attention in
class you would have known that the Cruciatus curse is the only curse which affects the cobra. Mad
Eye Moody or whoever he was told that to us very clearly,” she said.

“Well I can’t remember everything. I don’t have a brain like yours. We couldn’t have done
anything about my escape. We didn’t know anything about the security system of the Riddle house,”
replied Harry.

After an hour and fifty five minutes of talking they went to back to the boiling potion. It was
orange in colour now. Hermione was positive that she had made the potion correctly. So there was no
reason for soul burning to fail. Still both their hearts were thumping. This was such a big thing.
Exactly as the second hour ended, the potion stopped boiling. Some noises came out of it. Finally
with a small pop everything was quiet. Harry and Hermione looked inside. The vessel was full of
blood.

“It’s over. Voldemort is gone forever,” said Harry simply.

“I’m glad he’s gone but there is just one problem,” Hermione pointed out.

“What’s that?” asked Harry, scared for a moment.

“We are the only two people who know about this. With your reputation as a storyteller, how do
plan to make people believe that you’ve finally eliminated him,” said Hermione.

“By this,” said Harry and held up Voldemort’s wand.



4. Normality Returns
--------------------

**A/N: I’m happy to inform all of you that the action in this story is over. Now it is going to
be just Romance and Drama. That starts in this chapter. A word of warning now… the Harry/Hermione
shippers will not like what happens in this chapter. I can only start from where JKR has left us.
Whatever happens in this chapter (read on to find out!) will eventually lead to a better future for
Harry and Hermione. So please bear with me.**

**Thanks to all those who reviewed. To those who didn’t… thanks for reading but please try and
find a minute (or even less) to let me know what you feel. I’d really appreciate it.**

Chapter Four: Normality Returns

“I’ve come to inform you that this evening both of you will have to will be going to The Burrow.
Bill’s wedding is in two days time. Tonks will come with you. Molly wants both of you there.
Hermione, there is no need to worry about your parents. You can apparate into their room any time,”
said Remus Lupin. He had come early to Hermione’s place. Harry and Hermione had been asleep after
the long night. Remus could tell by their faces that this was not a welcome disturbance.

“That’s okay Remus but why does Tonks need to come with us? Surely she has more important things
to do,” said Harry, rubbing his eyes.

“She needs to discuss the security situation with Arthur. We want to make sure, the wedding goes
smoothly,” replied Remus. Harry and Hermione giggled. Remus looked confused, “Am I missing
something here?”

“You most certainly are. There is no need to review the security. Voldemort is history. All of
us can move around freely now. No need for any more fear,” said Harry, laughing. Hermione nodded.
Remus looked stunned. “Perhaps you should know the full story,” added Harry.

Over the next half an hour Harry and Hermione related the entire sequence of events leading up
to Voldemort’s death. Remus seemed too weak to speak. He probably didn’t believe them. Harry saw
his expression and produced Voldemort’s wand.

“Bloody Hell! This is it. I can’t believe this. I don’t know how to act,” Remus replied
weakly.

“Perhaps you should inform the ministry. Aurors need to be sent to The Riddle House for
arresting the remaining deatheaters. They would be awaiting the return of their master. What a rude
shock, it will be for them,” said Harry. Remus shook hands with them and left. Harry and Hermione
were still sleepy. They had a small breakfast before turning in again.

They were awakened by the ringing of the doorbell and loud hammering on the front door. Hermione
awoke first. Drowsily she went down to open the door. What awaited her outside was totally
unexpected.

The media of the entire wizarding world seemed to have gathered there. They all wanted to
interview Harry. The word of Voldemort’s defeat had spread through the ministry. The wizarding
media seemed very excited to see Hermione at the door. She was inundated with questions.

‘Where is Mr. Potter?”

“Is he seriously injured or can he have a word with us?”

“We heard you and Mr. Potter are living together. How does it feel to share a celebrity’s
attention?”

“Miss Granger, are the rumors about your secret love affair with Mr. Potter true?”

Hermione didn’t know how to handle all this. These were really absurd and obscene questions.
Luckily for her at that very moment Harry came out of the door. The journalists got even more
excited by his entry. Cameras started clicking madly. Harry seemed to gauge the situation well. He
wasn’t perturbed by the questions. He spoke loudly and clearly.

“Hermione and I do not wish to be disturbed at this moment. I am not going to be giving any
interviews, so you all can forget that. I am absolutely fit and fine. Any of you having doubts on
yesterday’s events can see this,” said Harry, raising Voldemort’s wand in his right hand. Again
there was mad clicking of the cameras. Harry took Hermione’s hand and walked in.

“I’m Sorry about all those questions they asked you. I heard a few of them while coming down the
stairs,” said Harry, when they were inside. Hermione turned red.

“It’s not your fault Harry. We know how the media is after our fourth year experience,” she
replied. They again had a small snack. They packed their bags for Ron’s house. Tonks would not be
coming with them as there was no need for security.

“How dare you two finish the job without me? Weren’t the three of us in this together?” said
Ron, as Hermione and Harry apparated into his room. He hugged both them, Hermione a little longer
than Harry. “Give me the details fast or I’ll hex both of you,” he added. So they spent the rest of
evening discussing the vents of the past few days. Ron was amazed to hear what all Hermione and
Harry had gone through.

“Hermione, you must have a tough time with your parents. Are they better now?” he asked putting
his hands on her shoulder.

“They are getting better with time. Thanks for the concern, Ron. If it hadn’t for Harry, all of
us would have been dead by now,” replied Hermione. Harry needed to discuss one more thing with Ron
and Hermione.

“Ron, you remember how things ended between me and Ginny last year at Hogwarts,” he started.

“You don’t need to worry about that Harry. She has no problem in getting back with you. Anyway,
you had told her that it was her safety which made you two break things off. That is not an issue
now so you can get back together,” said Ron, not waiting for Harry to finish.

“That’s not it Ron. I know Ginny still likes me but I’m not so sure about myself. Of course I
like her, but not like that. Last year amidst all that was happening, I got infatuated by her good
looks. I don’t want to hurt her. However if we continue like last year, she will eventually endure
despair,” Harry said, not looking at Ron.

“If that’s how you feel, I can’t do anything. Better finish things off now than let them linger.
You need to talk to her,” Ron said. Harry was surprised. He had expected Ron to blow up.

“Who are you and what have you done to my best friend…? Thanks Ron. You have really been very
understanding. Something I never expected from you,” replied Harry.

“Hey, people can change. Want me to get back to my old self?” Ron joked. Things seemed to be so
normal. With the threat of Voldemort gone, it was totally different feeling. All the deatheaters
were captured. So there was no threat at all.

That night after dinner, Harry asked Ginny to meet him in her room. Ginny seemed to be excited
by this. Harry hated to break her heart like this but he knew he was doing the right thing. Last
year after he had started going out with her, he realized it didn’t feel right. Though he enjoyed a
girl’s attention, with Ginny it was like a little sister. She was by no means a Cho Chang. With Cho
things had been a disaster. With Ginny, things just didn’t work out like he would have liked. He
had used Dumbledore’s death as an excuse to breakup with her.

“Hi Harry,” said Ginny, coming into the room.

“Hi Ginny. I wanted to speak about what happened between us last year. I know that you still
like me. Even I like you a lot. But I like you as a younger sister. I’m saying this now so that you
don’t get hurt later on. Then it would hurt more,” Harry said nervously. Ginny looked away and
didn’t say anything. Harry could see a few tears swimming in her eyes. She didn’t want to cry in
front of him.

“Ginny please don’t cry. I hurts me to see you like this. It is completely my fault. I shouldn’t
have kissed you in the common room like that,” Harry said, putting his arms around her. She buried
her face in her hands. Harry let her be for a while.

“Harry you have really hurt me. I thought we had a future together but if what you are saying is
true then you’ve done the right thing. If I’d got more serious with you, I don’t think I would have
been able to handle this. It will still hurt though,” she finally said.

“That’s my girl. I’m really sorry about this. You didn’t deserve this. I don’t know if it’ll
make you feel better or not but would you like to go to Bill’s wedding with me? As friends I mean,”
Harry replied.

“I’d like that,” said Ginny, with a small smile.

“Great! I had nobody to go with. Thanks for being so strong about this Ginny. It can’t be easy
for you. If you ever want to talk about it, I’m there. Goodnight,” Harry said, pecking her on the
cheek. He walked out of the room, satisfied that things had gone off well. He walked into Ron’s
room, only to be greeted by sheepish looks on Ron and Hermione’s faces.

“Did I interrupt something?” he asked, suspiciously.

“No Harry, you didn’t. Actually Ron just asked me to go to Bill’s wedding with him. Since he
wasn’t using me as a last a last resort, I agreed,” replied Hermione.

“That’s nice to hear. I’m going with Ginny. As friends, I mean,” said Harry. “But you two would
be having much more than friendship in your minds,” he teased. Both Ron and Hermione blushed.

“Shut up, Harry,” scoffed Ron. The three of them chatted for a while before going to bed. The
next day would be the day before the wedding. Everyone would be very busy fine tuning the
arrangements. Mrs. Weasley had insisted on cooking for everyone.

A lot had changed in one year. When Harry had come to The Burrow before his sixth year,
everybody in the Weasley family, with the possible exception of Ron, hated Fleur Delacour. Mrs.
Weasley had even tried to set up Bill and Tonks. However things were totally different now. Tonks
had publicly proclaimed her love for Bill after he was bitten by Greyback. Most of the family had
expected Fleur to walk away but she never left Bill’s side during his recovery. This moved everyone
and they happily accepted Fleur into the family.

On the day of the wedding everyone was very excited. The ceremony would be taking place in a
nearby church. Charlie was Bill’s best man while Fleur’s sister Gabrielle was the bridesmaid. There
were plenty of guests for the reception. Among them were the students and staff of Hogwarts, people
from the ministry, members of the order, family, friends and many more. Fleur looked stunning in
her dress. Harry was dancing with Ginny, when Professor McGonagall taped on his shoulder.

“Can I have a word with you Potter,” she asked Harry.

“Sure Professor,” replied Harry. They walked to one side of the reception hall.

“First of all I want to congratulate and thank you for what you did. Not that I approve you
going away alone but you did plan everything well,” McGonagall said.

“Thank you very much. I guess Hogwarts will be reopening now,” replied Harry.

“You’ve made sure of that. So unfortunately you will have to come back to school to continue
your studies. Remember this is your NEWT year. You have to be very systematic,” said
McGonagall.

“I’ll do my best Professor,” said Harry.

“I have a lot of work to do. Many new appointments have to be made. So I’m afraid I’ll have to
leave now. Give my regards to Mr. Weasley and Miss Granger,” McGonagall said before walking
away.

Harry and Hermione returned back to Hermione’s home the next day. Remus was waiting for them
with some good news.

“Hermione, I’m happy to inform you that your parents have made a quick recovery and will be
returning home later in tonight,” he said.

“That’s great news Remus. I hope they are alright. I feel guilty for not visiting them for the
past two days. There was a lot happening with the wedding,” she said.

That afternoon Harry and Hermione didn’t apparate to the hospital but took a cab. Robert and
Diana would be coming back with them. They had improved dramatically. Though some of the mental
effects remained physically they were almost back to normal. They could walk around and eat solid
food. While they were coming back from the hospital Harry felt a bit awkward. This arrangement of
staying with Hermione was only till her parents returned home. What would he do now? Surely he
wouldn’t have to go back to the Dursleys. Hermione saw his discomfort and understood everything
immediately. On reaching home the four of them sat down in the living room.

“Mum, do you think it would be okay if Harry stayed with us for the rest of the holidays?” asked
Hermione.

“I don’t want to intrude Hermione. You have got together with your parents after a long time.
You’d like to have some privacy with them, wouldn’t you?” Harry interjected.

“Nonsense. Now you are as good as family Harry. You saved all of us. Your presence will be no
intrusion at all. In fact Diana and I would like to know you better. Please stay with us, it’ll be
our pleasure,” said Robert. Diana nodded in agreement.

“Thanks a lot. I really appreciate your hospitality,” replied Harry. Robert and Diana excused
themselves. They wanted to go to bed early. Harry and Hermione remained in the living room. Harry
decided to touch a subject about which he had been curious for a long time.

“So how are you and Ron getting along?” he asked.

“We are getting along fine. Why wouldn’t we?” shrugged Hermione.

“You know that I don’t mean it like that Hermione. Do you like him, more than a friend?” asked
Harry again, making his point very clear. Hermione blushed. “You can tell me”, Harry added.

“Probably I do. I’m not sure. It just feels nice to have his attention. I guess I got jealous
over his affair with Lavender, but since then things have gone well,” she replied.

“Has he asked you officially or even hinted it?” quizzed Harry.

“No, none of that. I don’t even know if he likes me that way,” Hermione said.

“Don’t be thick Hermione. It’s common knowledge that he’s fancied you for ages. Even a first
year knows this. So now I see the feeling is mutual. What are you going to do about it?” said
Harry.

“I don’t know how to act. Isn’t it the guy who normally asks first?” queried Hermione.

“Normally it is that way. But knowing Ron, he wouldn’t ask you in a hundred years. I guess he
doesn’t want to risk your friendship. You have to take the initiative. Either ask him directly or
give him enough hints so that he is forced to ask you. Believe me when I say, you won’t be
rejected,” replied Harry.

“I don’t know. I’ve never got into anything like this before,” said Hermione, clearly still not
confident.

“I have an idea. Ron, you and I are to meet at Diagon Alley in a few days time. I’ll purposely
go somewhere, so that you two are alone. You can talk to him then,” Harry said,
enthusiastically.

“I don’t want you to be alone Harry,” Hermione objected.

“Don’t be silly! For once I can manage myself. Besides you two really need this time alone,”
Harry said. Hermione nodded.

The next few days passed uneventfully. Today was Harry’s birthday. He would be finally turning
seventeen. He got up quite early. He was surprised not to find any gifts or cards awaiting him.
Normally there were plenty. He walked down to the kitchen.

“Surprise!” squealed Hermione. She had convinced her parents to have a small birthday party for
Harry. Since they had just recovered they didn’t want to have anything big. However there was a
large chocolate truffle cake on the table. Along with them were all the gifts and cards Harry had
received. There seemed to be a lot more this year. Harry guessed this had to do with the defeat of
Voldemort. He had never had a birthday party before, so he still stood shocked.

“What’s all this?” he asked foolishly.

“Happy Birthday Harry!” Hermione said, hugging him. Robert and Diana too wished him
heartily.

“Hermione said you’ve never enjoyed a proper birthday. So we planned this for you. Hope you like
it,” said Diana.

“I love it! Thanks a lot all of you. I don’t have words to describe my elation at the moment,”
said Harry. He was really grateful for this. Later in the morning he opened his gifts with
Hermione. They included Canon’s quidditch team jersey from Ron, a book on advanced defense spells
from Lupin, joke shop products from Fred and George, the usual jumper from Mrs. Weasley, sweats
from Neville, a tracksuit from Robert and Diana and finally a new and improved broomstick servicing
kit from Hermione.

Without doubt it was Harry’s best birthday ever. In fact it was his only birthday which was
celebrated. He couldn’t wait to speak about it with Ron. He would be meeting him the next day at
Diagon Alley. Their letters from Hogwarts had arrived. One surprising thing mentioned by McGonagall
was the delay in the announcing of the Head Boy and Head Girl. Hermione, who was a certainty for
Head Girl couldn’t hide her disappointment. She had been very keen to show her badge to her
parents. Now she would have to wait till school reopened.

Next day Harry and Hermione apparated to Diagon Alley after breakfast. Ron was already waiting
for them. They had a butterbear each before Harry decided it was time for him to move away.

“Hey I’ve got some work at Gringotts. I’ll join you two later,” he said, winking at Hermione.
She looked nervous. He walked out of the door.

“So how are your parents, Hermione?” asked Ron, starting a conversation.

“They have improved a lot. Physically they are fit. Sometimes they have trouble sleeping but
overall it’s much better than expected,” replied Hermione. “Ron, would you mind going outside for a
walk? It’s very crowded in here.”

“Sure,” said Ron. Together they walked out. A chilly wind had started blowing. This was unusual
for this season. The two of them felt cold but decided to walk all the same.

“Walking might help us warm up,” said Hermione.

“You must have enjoyed spending time with Harry. I’m sorry I couldn’t have you two over. With
Bill’s wedding and everything, mum was really tired. I wish I could spend some more time with you…
I mean you two,” said Ron, looking away after the last comment.

“I would have liked that too. It was very nice with Harry but I missed you all the same,”
replied Hermione. It was getting chillier by the minute. Both of them had reached a quiet, empty
place when…

“Ouch!” cried Hermione. She was about to fall to the ground but Ron caught her.

“What’s the matter?” asked Ron, concerned.

“I just twisted my ankle. Let’s just sit for a while, I’ll be okay,” replied Hermione. Both of
them sat down on the grass. Hermione was shivering with the wind.

“Are you cold?” asked Ron. Hermione nodded, pulling her knees close to her chest.

“Do you want to get closer… body warmth might help,” said Ron. Hermione hesitated but Ron didn’t
wait for her reply. He moved his body next to her, putting his arm around her shoulders and pulling
her close. Hermione’s heart started pounding. As she looked up to speak, the wind made her hair fly
all over her face. Ron gently moved her hair behind her ears.

“I hope you are feeling better,” said Ron.

“Yes, thanks a lot Ron. You were great help. I don’t know what I’d do without you,” Hermione
replied, resting her head on his chest. Ron stiffened.

“What’s going on here? What are we doing?” he asked tentatively.

“Don’t be in denial mode Ron. Just say it. It’s only me after all. You’ve known me for six
years, haven’t you?” replied Hermione, finally breaking the barrier. She had observed Ron’s actions
over the past few minutes and her doubts had vanished. Ron looked stricken.

“You mean that you want…” he couldn’t complete. “You want us to g-get t-together?” he said,
literally shaking.

“If you ask me I’d be happy to,” replied Hermione simply. Ron relaxed.

“I really like you Hermione. I’m sorry for being such a git with Lavender but I promise to do
better with you,” he said.

“I like you too. Very much. I guess this makes us a couple,” Hermione said, with a smile on her
ace. Ron leaned forward and placed his lips on hers. It was a gentle first kiss.

“Most certainly,” replied Ron as they pulled away. Hermione stood up with a jump.

“Come on! Let’s go indoors. I’m freezing out here,” said Hermione. Ron gaped at her.

“Hadn’t you sprained your ankle?” Ron asked, with surprise.

“Oh, that was just an excuse to sit down with you,” Hermione said cheekily.

“So Hermione Granger has turned naughty… I need to fix that. I heard that you are ticklish,”
started Ron.

“Don’t you dare, Ronald Weasley,” shouted Hermione, starting to run. Ron chased her, catching
her quite easily. Both of them fell to the floor as Ron tried to tickle her. He was almost on top
of her. She was about to warn him not to tickle when he covered her mouth with his. This was far
more passionate and lengthy as compared to the first kiss. Both of them were breathless by the time
they pulled apart.

Harry saw Ron and Hermione holding hands when he met them near Gringotts. He knew his plan had
worked.

“Congrats both of you!” he said, punching Ron on the back.

“Thank you, matchmaker,” Ron replied. Hermione nodded. The three of them spent some more time at
Diagon Alley before it was time to disperse. Ron promised to visit them during the holidays. That
night Hermione wanted to talk to Harry.

“Harry thanks a lot for your help. I don’t think Ron and I could have got together without your
inputs,” she said.

“You’re welcome,” replied Harry.

“Harry, are you okay with this,” she asked softly. Harry looked at her confused.

“Do I need to remind you that I made this happen? If I wasn’t okay with it, why would I
encourage you?” he said.

“I just wanted to make sure. Goodnight Harry, I should be getting to bed,” said Hermione. She
walked towards her bedroom. Harry stared after her. Something seemed to be bothering her. He
guessed she was just apprehensive about getting into a relationship for the first time.

The rest of the holidays passed quickly. Ron visited them once every week. Things between Ron
and Hermione were going well. Harry didn’t feel left out with them getting together. Finally it was
time for them to get back to Hogwarts. On the day they were leaving, Robert summoned Harry to have
a quick word.

“Harry, we’ve already thanked you but I can’t help it. What you did for us this summer was… I
don’t have words to describe it. I just don’t mean saving us. You were alone in this house with
Hermione for days. She was emotionally unstable. Even a decent guy would be tempted to take
advantage of such a situation. I’m sure you understand what I mean. But you were truly honest and
made sure no harm came Hermione’s way. So I’d like to thank you one final time,” he said.

“I would never even think of such a thing. Hermione’s my best friend and I’ll do everything I
can to see her happy,” replied Harry, embarrassed.

Harry, Ron and Hermione found a compartment to themselves in the Hogwarts Express. They
discussed a lot about the coming year. Hermione seemed very focused on the NEWTs.

“That’s a sight I love so much,” said Harry, pointing towards the castle.

“Can’t believe this is the last time we’ll be traveling to Hogwarts,” said Hermione.

“Remember the first time the three of us met on this train. In fact it was this very
compartment. What a coincidence!” added Ron. They learned on the train that Draco Malfoy would not
be coming back to Hogwarts. Though the three of them were happy on hearing this, Harry couldn’t
help feeling that he’d miss his encounters with Malfoy at Hogwarts. There had been plenty of them
in the train itself.

They got down at the station and were greeted by Hagrid’s shouts calling the first years. The
three of them would miss all these scenes from the next year. But there was no need to think about
all these things now. Such feelings were for the end of the year. Now was the time to enjoy. There
was whole year at Hogwarts to look forward to.



5. Life Goes On
---------------

**A/N: I guess I had most of you fuming by the time you finished reading chapter four. If all
of you felt like that just by reading Ron/Hermione, imagine what it would have been for me to
write. I’ll be honest. It was YUCK!!! However while writing a story one has to go through these
phases. On popular demand, I’ve reduced Ron/Hermione from three chapters to two. They will breakup
sometime during the next chapter. I wanted to show the mismatch between Ron and Hermione. That
starts in this chapter. As usual I’d like to request all of you to review. Please…**

Chapter Five: Life Goes On

“Welcome back to Hogwarts,” said Professor McGonagall, after the sorting ceremony ended. “I’m so
glad that after the uncertainties of last year all of us are together again. We owe this to Mr.
Potter.” The hall erupted with claps. Harry looked embarrassed but managed to smile.

“A lot of changes have taken place in the faculty this year. I would like all of you to listen
to me before welcoming our new teachers. Due to the sad demise of Professor Dumbledore I have had
to take over as Headmistress, with Professor Sprout as my deputy. So in my place Nymphadora Tonks
will be teaching Transfiguration. Our Potions master Horace Slughorn had specially come back from
retirement for last year. He will not be with us this year. His place will be taken over by someone
special. During the holidays famous aurors Frank and Alice Longbottom recovered after spending
fifteen years at St. Mungos. While Frank has decided to back to his old job, Alice has kindly
agreed to teach Potions here. Finally I’d like to welcome back Remus Lupin as the teacher of
Defense Against Dark Arts. Professor Snape after an early retirement has settled down in New
Zealand. I’d also mention that Professor Longbottom and Professor Lupin will be the heads of
Gryffindor and Slytherin respectively. Now please welcome our new teachers with a bid round of
applause,” McGonagall announced.

The three new Professors walked into the hall shaking hands with McGonagall. Harry’s thoughts
wandered away to many different things. He was elated to hear about Neville’s parents. Neville had
been his loyal friend throughout his years at Hogwarts. However he was angered to hear that Snape
had got away after killing Dumbledore. He couldn’t wait to confront McGonagall about this. He was
glad to see Remus and Tonks in the faculty. It looked like they finally had a good set of teachers.
McGonagall continued speaking.

“Now for something you all must have been waiting for. Head Boy and Head Girl! Well, the choice
of Head Girl was one of the easiest in the history of Hogwarts. I and my fellow colleagues have
unanimously chosen Hermione Granger as the new Head Girl. Miss Granger if you can come up and
collect your badge,” she said.

Hermione covered her face with her palms. Ron hugged her and kissed her cheek. Harry thumped her
on the back. Hermione shyly collected her badge from McGonagall. Ron looked at her proudly. His
heart was beating fast. The announcement of the Head Boy would be next. He was one of the
frontrunners for the post. It would be wonderful to share the Head student’s quarters with her. He
looked up anxiously at McGonagall. If only she would make him Head Boy…

“On the other hand the choice for Head Boy was very difficult indeed. It is common belief that
only a prefect can become a Head Boy. But that is not true. This year we have a non prefect as our
Head Boy. I’d like to ask Harry Potter to come up please,” she said.

Harry wasn’t all that surprised. It was only special circumstances that prevented him from being
a prefect. He did have a reasonably good academic record. He happily walked up to McGonagall to
collect his badge. Hermione hugged him when he came back to his seat. Ron shook his hand. Harry
didn’t see the disappointed look on his face. McGonagall clapped her hands and food appeared on the
table. Almost everybody ate hungrily. Nobody noticed Ron was for once nibbling at his food. After
food was finished Professor Longbottom walked towards them.

“Hello! I just saw Harry and Hermione. You must be Ron. Neville speaks so much about the three
of you. As the head of Gryffindor I need to take Harry and Hermione to the Head’s quarters,” she
said. The two of them got up to follow her. That was when Harry noticed the look on Ron’s face.
Harry knew that expression. Ron was jealous. He decided to deal with that later. They entered into
the Gryffindor common room. Professor Longbottom tapped the wall with her wand. A door
appeared.

“This door will be visible to the two of you only. Soon it will be password protected. The
quarter decides on its password every year. This password will be strictly confidential. Not even
the teachers are to know it. There is a fireplace connected to the Headmistress’ office in case of
emergencies. Both of you have separate bedrooms and bathrooms. There is a common room for both of
you to study. As you get inside the magical quill lying on the common room table will write the
password,” she said, making way for them to go in.

“Professor Longbottom, we are glad to have you here. I hope you enjoy being with us. Neville
must be ecstatic with your recovery,” Harry said, trying to make a good impression on his new
Potions teacher.

“Thank you for that. Neville is very pleased as expected. Frank and I are also very happy to be
in the thick of things once again,” she replied before waving at them and walking away. Harry and
Hermione walked to the common room table. The quill floated in the air. It looked as if it was
thinking. Harry was reminded of the sorting hat. Finally it wrote ‘Philia’ in the air.

“Strange! I wonder what that means,” commented Hermione. Harry shrugged.

“You would much rather have had Ron here, wouldn’t you?” asked Harry, sitting down. Hermione
looked back at him confused.

“What are you saying Harry? Why would I want that?” Hermione asked in response.

“You can tell me the truth Hermione. I saw the look on his face. It seemed that both of you had
great plans for this place,” said Harry. Hermione looked angry.

“Harry James Potter! I want to make one thing very clear. Just because Ron is my boyfriend, it
doesn’t mean I have lost my sense of right and wrong. Ron and I have never even discussed this. You
were the best person for the job. You very well know why you didn’t become a prefect. In fact even
if it weren’t you, Ron wouldn’t have been a good choice for Head Boy. He always neglected his
prefect duties. So don’t you dare say such things about me,” she said, loudly. Harry was
ashamed.

“I’m sorry Hermione. I jumped to conclusions,” he said.

“It’s okay but never do that again,” Hermione replied. “Perhaps we should go and join the
others. They’ll think that we are antisocial.” Both of them walked out. The students in the common
room seemed stunned to see them appearing out of the wall.

Next day the seventh years were happy to see their first class would be Defense Against the Dark
Arts. Professor Lupin had a great reputation among most students. He had by far been the best among
the six previous teachers. They were keenly waiting to learn new curses and hexes. However when
Professor Lupin entered, his first words disappointed them.

“Wands away everybody. No book required either. Today’s class will be fully oral,” he said.
Seeing the glum look on everyone’s faces he laughed. “Let me assure you that I’m not a practitioner
of Dolores Umbridge’s philosophy,” he added. The students seemed relieved. Lupin continued.

“At the moment a Dark side doesn’t exist. So until another dark wizard as powerful as Voldemort
rises, we needn’t fear. Fear. That is the key word. You have to overcome your fear of the dark
side. Voldemort’s power and self belief grew tremendously when he got to know people feared to
speak his name. So as your first lesson you all have to learn to say ‘Voldemort’. This is a lesson
for most of the Professors including the Headmistress and all students from first to seventh year,”
he announced. Most students looked terrified at the prospect of saying Voldemort’s name, especially
Ron. Harry looked bored. So did Hermione. Both of them had said the name plenty of times and had no
fear. Lupin walked up to them.

“The Headmistress tells me that you and Miss Granger already speak this name. So this lesson is
no use for the two of you. She would like to meet the two of you in her office,” he told Harry.
Both of them nodded before heading towards the Head’s quarters. They would be using the fireplace
to reach McGonagall.

“Good morning to both of you. I hope you’ve settled down in your new quarters,” McGonagall said
as they entered her office through the fireplace.

“Good morning Professor. We’ve settled down alright. Professor Lupin said that you wanted to
meet us,” replied Hermione, politely. Harry nodded. He looked at the new portrait of Dumbledore
which was hanging on the wall. It winked towards him.

“Well, both of you would be wasting your time in the class, so I wondered if you had any
questions regarding your new duties,” McGonagall said. Neither Harry nor Hermione had any doubts.
So Harry decided to confront her about Snape.

“Professor, could you enlighten me why Severus Snape got away with murder. Literally I mean,”
asked Harry, trying to keep his voice cool. McGonagall sighed.

“I knew it wouldn’t be long before you asked this. So I should tell you the full story. Please
have a seat,” she replied. Harry and Hermione sat down with McGonagall opposite them.

“It all started when Albus tried to destroy the ring. It was his big mistake. The injury in his
hand was not an ordinary one. His hand was poisoned. With the help of magic he could control it but
that sort of poisoning is not curable. Albus would have died within a month or two anyway. This was
where Severus came in. Albus knew V-Voldemort told his secrets only highly trusted deatheaters. The
location of his horcruxes would certainly rank as a top secret. Severus’ position among the
deatheaters was not at the highest level. Albus thought that by killing him Severus could work his
way to the top with Vol-Voldemort. Then we would probably get to know the location of the
horcruxes,” she said. Harry was not convinced.

“Then why did you speak of Snape like that during the funeral. Surely you knew that it was
Professor Dumbledore’s wish to be killed,” he asked.

“Unfortunately I knew nothing of this. Albus didn’t tell about this to anyone except Severus. He
didn’t want us to divert our attention towards him. It was Severus who told me all this when he
came to Hogwarts after your victory over Voldemort,” McGonagall replied. Harry was enraged at this.
Hermione also seemed angry as she stood up to speak. But Harry beat her.

“And you believed his bullshit of a story! He was just trying to save his ass because his master
was gone. He fed you a bunch of lies,” shouted Harry. Hermione covered her mouth, shocked to hear
Harry addressing McGonagall like this.

“Please mind your language Mr. Potter. Ten points from Gryffindor. Contrary to your belief I
haven’t lost my ability to think. A tongue can lie but memories can’t lie. Severus showed me his
conversation with Albus through a Pensieve. He felt that there was no place for him here anymore,
so he shifted to New Zealand. He didn’t go alone though…” she was interrupted by Hermione.

“Did Draco Malfoy go with him?” Hermione asked.

“You’re right Miss Granger. Mr. Malfoy was given a choice of going back to his parents or to go
with Severus. He knew he’d have to turn to the dark side incase he went to his parents. He didn’t
want that. So he went along with Severus. I offered to let him continue at Hogwarts but he wouldn’t
listen. Severus has now formally adopted him,” she finished. For the second time in as many days
Harry felt like an idiot. He quietly apologized to McGonagall. Just as they were leaving,
McGonagall called out to Harry.

“Mr. Potter, though I’m not the Head of Gryffindor anymore, I’d like to remind you that as the
quidditch captain you should hold trials as soon as possible,” she said. Harry nodded.

Seventh year was hard work. All the teachers made sure that the students didn’t go easy on their
work. Harry had decided to hold trials on the twenty eighth of September. Ron was almost a
certainty for keeper. His jealousy seemed to have eased. Harry deduced Hermione must have spoken to
him. On the day of the trials Hermione watched from the stands. Harry and Ron were conducting the
trials. After a long workout the team was selected. Harry and Ron of course were seeker and keeper
respectively. Ginny Weasley and Damelza Robins retained their position of Chasers. Dean Thomas
replaced Katie Bell, who had graduated. Jimmy Peakes was joined by Dennis Creevey as Beater.
Hermione walked towards Harry and Ron when practice finished.

“Harry you are some flier! Those final moves were fantastic,” she said.

“I love flying. I’m so good that know-it-all Granger praises me before her own boyfriend,” Harry
teased Ron. Ron scowled at him. Harry and Hermione were laughing.

“Now would be a good time to stand up for me Hermione,” said Ron, sarcastically.

“Sorry Ron! We didn’t mean to laugh at you. However truths have to be accepted. You are a great
flier but nobody can match Harry on his broom. Even you know that. Harry isn’t the youngest player
in the century for nothing,” Hermione replied. Ron relaxed. Harry had just gone to change when Ron
took Hermione aside.

“Can you meet me in the astronomy tower at midnight? We are both prefects so it is not a risk,”
he asked her.

“Sure,” replied Hermione. She wondered what Ron wanted. After Harry and Ron had changed they
went back to the castle. Now that Gryffindor had a team, a great burden was lifted of Harry’s
shoulders.

Later that night Hermione crept up the Astronomy tower. She couldn’t see anyone. Had Ron tricked
her? Just then she felt a pair of arms around her waist.

“You are full of surprises today. So what’s your motive for asking me to come here?” she
asked.

“With all the work we have in seventh year, we hardly get any time to spend together. So I
thought it would be nice to act like a normal couple for once,” Ron said. It was dark but the full
moon ensured enough light. Ron put his arms around Hermione. She didn’t know what Ron was thinking.
Without warning he kissed her.

They kissed on and off for several minutes. Hermione was actually getting tired but Ron showed
no sign of relenting. Now his tongue was demanding entry into her mouth. She was a hesitant but
didn’t refuse. Things quickly went beyond passionate.

“Ron…,” started Hermione but Ron brought back his mouth down to hers.

“I’ve wanted to do that for so long,” said Ron finally pulling apart. Before Hermione could say
anything he was at it again. Seeing no resistance from Hermione he went a step further. He put his
hand under her jumper. Hermione momentarily froze before stopping him by pushing him away.

“Ron, what do you think you were doing?” she asked angrily.

“I’m sorry. I guess I got carried away,” Ron replied meekly. He didn’t know how to act at this
moment.

“It’s getting late. Perhaps we should go to bed now,” said Hermione, getting up.

“Hermione, I didn’t mean to make you uncomfortable,” Ron said, trying to calm her down.

“It’s okay Ron. I’ll see you tomorrow,” she said, walking away. She didn’t wait for Ron.

Despite what she said Hermione was not okay. She lay awake in her bed recollecting what all had
happened in the past hour. Even before Ron’s final move things didn’t feel right. She had always
imagined kissing a guy would be a wonderful experience. This wasn’t wonderful to her. Ron seemed a
bit too aggressive. She pushed these thoughts out. This was her first major relationship. She was
just not ready for what was to coming. Things would be okay tomorrow.

As Hermione thought, things were indeed okay. Ron and Hermione didn’t talk about what happened
the previous day at all. Both of them took not talking as a sign of peace. Within a few days they
had virtually forgotten that incident.

On the fifth of October a notice interested all the students.

*This year Hogwarts will be holding a ball on Halloween. Students from all years are welcome
to attend. Proper dance robes need to be worn on the occasion. The venue will be the Great Hall.
Entry starts at* *7:00 pm**.*

*Alice Longbottom*

*Head, Gryffindor*

The gossips about who was going with who started. Within a week most students had their dates
fixed. Ron was of course going with Hermione. Ginny was going with Neville. Lavender was going with
Seamus. Dean was going with Parvati.

Harry was in no mood to go. His past two relationships had failed. If he went with someone
unknown it could lead to something like Cho. He wished he could go with somebody, just as friends.
But his only two female friends, Hermione and Ginny were already booked. Also it wouldn’t be right
to go with Ginny after he’d broken up wit her. As Harry was thinking this out, Ginny and Luna
Lovegood walked towards him.

“Hi Harry. Have you found a date yet?” she asked. It had taken Ginny sometime but finally she
seemed to be getting over Harry.

“I don’t think I’ll go. I don’t want to go with someone unknown and all my friends are already
going with somebody else,” he replied.

“Why don’t you go with Luna? I mean… you two know each other. It’s just one dance. Only as
friends if that is what you are looking for,” babbled Ginny. Luna turned red.

“Ginny, don’t force Harry like that. If he wants he can ask me directly,” she said.

“Actually that’s not a bad idea. That is if you’d like to go, Luna. We did go to one of
Slughorn’s parties together. So what do you say Luna?” Harry asked.

“Alright then,” replied Luna quickly. Ginny clapped her hands excitedly.

“See, I solved both your problems with one stroke. I’m a genius!” she started boasting. Harry
and Luna laughed.

The first quidditch match of the season was Gryffindor against Slytherin. Slytherin’s new
captain was Vincent Crabbe, their Beater. A skinny second year named Andrew Strauss was their
Seeker. Harry reluctantly shook hands with Crabbe. The game started on Madam Hooch’s whistle. Luna
Lovegood was the commentator.

“Blaise with the quaffle…… passes to Nott…… moves forward… shoots…… tremendous save by Weasley.
Gryffindor have possession. Thomas charging ahead….. dodges bludger thrown by Goyle…… passes to
Robins who immediately sends it towards Weasley…… Weasley shoots…… AND SCORES. TEN-ZERO to
Gryffindor.”

The match was evenly balanced. Neither team could open up a big advantage. Gryffindor had Ron to
thank for a few fantastic saves. It was down to the Seekers. While Harry was the experienced one,
Strauss definitely had the advantage when it came to build. Harry had caught sight of the snitch
twice but it disappeared quickly. Now he could see it again. Strauss was closer to it. Harry
quietly moved towards it, trying to avoid Strauss’ attention. Strauss didn’t seem to notice his
movements. The snitch too didn’t fly away. Harry discretely closed his fingers around it. Nobody
seemed to have noticed this. Harry raised his arm to signal.

“Harry Potter has caught the snitch…… GRYFFINDOR WINS!” shouted Luna Lovegood. The players
congratulated one another. Hermione was walking towards them to congratulate Harry and Ron. As soon
as Ron saw her, he kissed her before she could say anything. There were catcalls and whistles. The
whole school was watching. Hermione felt very uncomfortable. She fled the scene. Ron tried to stop
her but she was already too far away. He decided to tackle her later. This was time for
celebration.

Harry was already in the Head’s quarters. Ron waited in the common room for Hermione to come by.
He hoped she wasn’t too mad at him. Hermione didn’t even acknowledge his presence as she walked
towards her quarters.

“Hey Hermione, wait! I wanted to talk to you,” hollered Ron.

“What do you need to talk about? You got what you wanted, didn’t you?” asked Hermione,
sarcastically.

“What do you mean by I ‘got what I wanted’,” Ron countered.

“You wanted to show off in front of the whole school. You did that,” Hermione answered.

“How could you think that? I only kissed you because I wanted to. You know that very well,” said
Ron.

“Don’t lie to me Ron. You didn’t even look towards me after winning the match. Only when I was
near you thought you’ll make a show of it. It was you who had won the match. So I should have
kissed you, not the other way round,” Hermione replied.

“If you were going to kiss anyway, then what the hell is your bloody problem?” asked Ron,
getting angry.

“There is a BIG difference Ron. I wouldn’t have made a show of it. But you couldn’t wait for an
opportunity like this,” said Hermione.

“Hermione, for Heavens sake, it was a happy occasion. You are my girlfriend. I can kiss you
whenever and wherever I want. Don’t say you didn’t enjoy it,” shouted Ron, losing all patience.
Hermione looked shocked at this last comment. It took her a while to speak.

“I may be your girlfriend Ron BUT I’M NOT LAVENDER BROWN. I KNOW YOU HAD PLENTY OF ‘LIBERTIES’
WITH HER. DON’T PRESUME YOU’LL HAVE ALL OF THEM WITH ME,” she screamed and ran into the Head’s
quarters.



6. From Bad to Worse
--------------------

**A/N: I must warn all fans of Ron that they won’t like this chapter. I don’t have anything
against Ron but this part of his character was necessary for the story. If it makes you feel
better, Ron plays a positive role later in the story. I do not turn Ron into a negative role
character.**

**For Harry/Hermione fans, it’s what you’ve been waiting for. As I’d said before, this is the
last chapter of Ron/Hermione. There is still some time before Harry/Hermione starts. Thanks to all
the reviewers. You comments are really appreciated. Happy reading! (And as always please
review…)**

Chapter Six: From Bad to Worse

Harry was reading in the common room of the Head’s quarters when Hermione walked in. She looked
terrible. Her eyes were watery. Her face was red with anger.

“What’s the matter?” asked Harry, seeing her like this.

“Ronald Weasley is the world’s biggest git,” Hermione shouted. She sat down on the sofa. The
tears she was trying to hold back started falling. Harry understood that something was drastically
wrong. Hermione needed comforting. He sat down besides her. He put his arms around her shoulders.
She buried her face into his arms and cried freely. It took her a few minutes to regain
composure.

“Do you want to talk about it? It might help,” said Harry gently, patting her back. She kept
quiet for sometime. Both she and Ron had said some horrible things to each other. She didn’t want
Harry to know all that. On the other hand she wanted to tell Harry what had happened because she
wanted his advice on what to do next. She decided to tell him most of the things, leaving the
shouting match out.

“You saw how Ron kissed me after the quidditch match. I felt really awkward at that moment, so I
ran away. It was clear to me that he only did it to make a show of it. I didn’t like it one bit. A
while ago, he tried to talk to me. I told him exactly what I felt and it kept getting worse. We
ended up shouting at each other,” she explained. She waited anxiously for Harry to respond. His
opinion meant a lot to her.

“Well, he shouldn’t have kissed you like that in front of the whole school. Even if he really
wanted to, it would seem like a show to any third party. So you’re right on that front,” said
Harry. Hermione smiled slightly.

“What do you think I should do?” asked Hermione.

“Fights like this between couples are quite common. You both will get over it in no time. If I
know Ron well, I think he’ll apologize to you first thing tomorrow morning. To make peace even you
should apologize, even if you feel it wasn’t your fault,” replied Harry. Hermione seemed
satisfied.

“Thanks Harry, I couldn’t have done without you tonight. This was really tough on me but with
your help it became a lot easier,” said Hermione gratefully. They said goodnight before Hermione
walked off.

Harry sat contended. It felt so good to have helped Hermione. He had probably helped every
person in the world by killing Voldemort. But having helped his best friend, it felt totally
different. She had needed him and he had been there for her. When she had walked in she was in a
terrible state. By the time she went into her bedroom, her mood had significantly improved and he
was responsible for it.

Next morning Harry and Hermione walked to breakfast together. Hermione was apprehensive about
facing Ron. Harry told her to be calm and things would work out themselves. Ron wasn’t at there at
breakfast. Hermione waited anxiously for him but he didn’t come. Hermione was now worried. After
she finished breakfast she rushed up to the Gryffindor common room. As she was about to enter she
collided head on with someone.

“Cant you look…,” she started but stopped when she saw who the person was. It was Ron.

“Hi Hermione,” said Ron, awkwardly.

“Hi,” said Hermione, the collision totally forgotten. Ron looked like he was trying to think
what to say. Finally he spoke.

“Hermione, I was an idiot after the match. I’m sorry for not acknowledging that last night,” he
said quietly. Hermione admired Harry’s interpretation of the whole situation. He had been
absolutely right.

“It’s okay. I’m sorry for overreacting,” replied Hermione. Ron sighed in relief.

“So are we okay then,” he asked, just to make sure.

“I guess,” replied Hermione. Even though the fight was over, things still seemed awkward. Ron
decided to break the ice.

“Since we are alone here, you wouldn’t mind this,” he said, softly kissing her. Hermione didn’t
think he’d kiss her after what had happened the day before. She smiled to let him know things were
okay.

Halloween day arrived. Everyone was excited about the ball. Harry was happy that he was going
after all. If he didn’t go his absence would stand out. Going with Luna wasn’t that bad. He had
been asked by two girls. One was Romilda Vane, whom Harry hated. Some people were sure to tease him
for going with Loony but he couldn’t care less. Ron. Hermione, Luna and he would be going together.
He waited with Ron for the girls to arrive. They arrived exactly at ten minutes to seven. Luna
looked cute in her light green attire. Hermione looked very pretty but hadn’t done her hair like
she had done for the Yule ball in fourth year. Ron looked slightly downcast.

“Hi,” said Hermione, taking Ron’s hand.

“Hi, why didn’t you do your hair like in fourth year? You looked great like that,” Ron couldn’t
help saying. Hermione was taken aback.

“Are you implying that I don’t look good today?” Hermione asked coolly.

“I never said that,” replied Ron quickly. Hermione didn’t seem convinced.

“Ron, unlike in fourth year my hair is not that bushy now. So I decided to go with my natural
look. I hate it when I don’t look like myself,” she explained. Ron nodded. Hermione still wasn’t
sure but let go. This was enjoyment time. Harry and Luna had already gone in. Ron and Hermione
followed them.

The Weird Sisters were again the musicians. They played song after song as the couples danced.
Harry’s dancing had improved since his fourth year. So Luna had a much better time than Parvati.
Ron and Hermione seemed to be enjoying themselves. Finally Harry and Luna sat down for a breather.
Harry got some drinks for them.

“Thanks for coming with me Luna. I never thought I’d enjoying dancing someday,” said Harry.

“You’re welcome. Even I enjoyed it,” said Luna, looking towards Ron. This didn’t go unnoticed by
Harry.

“I heard you were dating Gregory Goyle,” said Harry, half smiling.

“Yeah right,” said Luna, still staring at Ron, “Excuse me, what did you just say, Harry? Did I
hear correctly?”

“Glad to have your attention. Have you finished daydreaming about Ron?” laughed Harry. Luna
blushed deeply.

“Was I that obvious?” she asked.

“Too obvious I should say. You were totally lost,” said Harry, laughing.

“Sorry for that,” replied Luna. She seemed embarrassed.

“Since when have you fancied him?” asked Harry. “You don’t have to answer that if you don’t want
to,” he added. Luna didn’t reply at once. Harry thought that he was making her uncomfortable. He
was about to speak when Luna replied.

“I’ll tell you Harry but you aren’t allowed to say this to anybody,” she said. Harry nodded. “I
liked him when we met in the Hogwarts Express two years back. To start with it was just a silly
childhood crush. But as time passed I grew more serious. Ron always had a good sense of humor and
made me laugh. You would have noticed how I always wished him before a quidditch match. I used to
cheer for him throughout the matches. At one point I thought he was reciprocating my feelings. How
wrong I was. He never thought of me as anything beyond his sister’s friend. Now he’s with
Hermione…,” Luna stopped. It was killing her to say all this. While speaking the last few words her
voice choked. Harry was surprised by her confession.

“Luna, I had no idea you were this serious. Why didn’t you talk to him? Maybe things could have
worked out,” he said gently.

“No point in crying over spilt milk. Ron and Hermione are together now. They look so happy.
There is absolutely no chance for me. I may as well move ahead. Thanks Harry for listening to me. I
needed to talk about this with someone,” said Luna quickly. Harry felt sorry for Luna. No wonder
she was reluctant about coming to the ball. Even he had been reluctant but his reasons were totally
different.

“Don’t look so serious Harry. Whatever I feel for Ron has to end now. Come on tell me about your
love life. Any girl you like?” she asked.

“As I told you the other day I’m not going to get involved with any girl just for the sake of
it. I’ve had a horror experience with Cho and things didn’t work out with Ginny. I don’t want my
list of failed relationships to grow. So I’m prepared to wait. When I find the perfect girl, I’ll
make my move,” replied Harry in a very assured voice. He was very firm about this. Luna looked
impressed.

“That’s great Harry but if I asked you to describe the qualities of your ideal girl, what would
they be?” Luna asked. Harry thought about this.

“Well… she has to be a very good friend. Without that I wouldn’t even start. That was my mistake
with Cho. Friendship always comes before romantic involvement. Then my liking for her should not
depend on looks and not be based on an infatuation. That was what went wrong with Ginny. What I
felt for her was just an infatuation. I should be able to trust her with everything. She should be
good at heart. Both of us should be there for each other in times of joy as well as despair. Lastly
she should know me as well as I know myself,” Harry said seriously.

“Wow Harry. You sound like a philosopher. You will certainly keep you future girlfriend very
happy,” said Luna. “I’ll be right back Harry. I want to fix my hair. It’s become quite messy,” she
added before getting up.

Harry sat alone. His answer to Luna’s last question was right from his heart. He had always
thought this way after breaking up with Ginny but had never expressed it. His gaze traveled towards
Ron and Hermione who were still dancing. That was when something huge hit him. There was just one
person who satisfied all the above qualities. Harry was amazed that he had not thought about her
before. It was Hermione.

Harry recapped all that he had said in his mind. Hermione was probably his closest friend. She
remained his friend even when Ron had turned against him. He had never been infatuated by her.
Unlike Ron he never cared how she looked. Of course he was surprised during the Yule Ball but that
was mainly because she looked different. She was very good at heart. Her attitude towards house
elves showed that. Both of them trusted each other fully. There was not a secret he’d kept from
her. They had shared happy and sad moments together. Whether it was winning the quidditch cup,
preparing polyjuice potion, saving Sirius, preparing for the Triwizard Tournament tasks or rushing
to the ministry, they were always together. There were times Ron had not been able to go but
Hermione was always there. Harry was sure she knew him better than he knew himself.

Hermione was the girl he had been looking for. She was right under his nose but he had missed
her. Now there was no way to get her. He hated himself for helping Ron and Hermione getting
together. He was so busy in his thoughts that he didn’t notice Luna coming back. She was followed
by Ron and Hermione. All of them had sat down but Harry was still oblivious of everything.

“Penny for your thoughts,” a voice asked. The voice made Harry’s stomach turn upside down though
it was so familiar that he could recognize it in his sleep.

“Nothing Hermione, just passing time,” replied Harry hurriedly. The four of them chatted for
sometime. Harry was finding it hard to look at Hermione. He wished he hadn’t said those things to
Luna. Then he wouldn’t feel this way.

“Let’s go and dance again,” said Ron, taking Hermione’s hand.

“Actually Ron, why don’t we exchange partners for this last bit?” suggested Hermione. Both Harry
and Luna looked up anxiously.

“Sure, why not?” replied Ron, taking Luna’s hand this time. Luna didn’t have any time to say
anything. Harry still sat in his place, making no movement.

“You game for a dance Harry?” asked Hermione. Harry nodded and they got back to the dance floor.
Both of them danced to a slow song that was playing.

“You’re better than Ron, Harry. But don’t tell him that,” said Hermione. The truth was that Ron
was more interested in holding Hermione close than in dancing. After a while it had got physically
tiring.

“Thanks,” replied Harry. It felt so wonderful to dance with Hermione. As he looked towards Ron
and Luna he couldn’t help feeling this was the way things should have been. He was getting lost in
her chocolate brown eyes. If he wasn’t careful, he’d lose control. When the song ended he excused
himself.

“Hermione, I’m quite tired. I think I’ll retire to my bedroom,” he said. Hermione looked
concerned but Harry didn’t wait. He said goodbye to Ron and Luna before walking towards the Head’s
quarters.

Harry was looking through his suitcase to see if he could find a pair of socks he seemed to have
lost when his hand touched a glass bottle. He took it out. It was Felix Felices. Horace Slughorn
had given it to him the previous year but he hadn’t used it all. His mind at the moment was focused
only on Hermione and his new feelings for her. Had this been a year ago he would have immediately
used the potion to get together with her. But not this time. He believed a relationship based on
deceit could never last. If he and Hermione ever got together, they would do it naturally. Not with
some silly potion. He kept the bottle back.

The weekend after Halloween was a Hogsmede weekend. Harry, Ron and Hermione were finishing their
homework in the Gryffindor common room. Hermione, as usual finished her work first, followed by
Harry.

“Harry I hope you are coming to Hogsmede. We’ll have lots of fun,” said Hermione.

“Wouldn’t you and Ron want to be alone? I don’t want to come between the two of you,” said
Harry. He didn’t want to go as it wouldn’t help his situation with feelings for Hermione.

“Nonsense. You’re coming and that’s it,” said Hermione firmly.

“I’m not sure Hermione…” started Harry but stopped seeing the look on Hermione’s face. “Fine!
I’ll come but I’ll leave you two alone after sometime. You do need time to yourselves,” he said.
Since he had finished his work he went into the quarters. Hermione remained with Ron.

“Why did you do that Hermione? We hardly have any time together. Whatever little we have, you
always spoil by bringing in Harry,” said Ron hotly.

“Ron, the three of us became friends much before the two of us got together. And I will not let
that change. The three of us always go together and this time will be no different. Friendship
means a lot to me, if you don’t know,” replied Hermione.

“Have it your way. I don’t want us to fight again. I just thought it would be nice to spend some
time with you alone,” said Ron, giving up. Hermione was as stubborn as a mule. There was no point
in arguing with her.

“That’s better. We will get to spend time together. Didn’t you hear what Harry said? He’ll leave
us alone after a while,” said Hermione happily.

On Sunday Harry, Ron and Hermione were having butterbear at Three Broomsticks. After a long time
coming to Hogsmede was not a security concern for the students. After that they went to Zonko’s.
Harry bought a few things from there. He decided to take leave of Ron and Hermione at this
moment.

Ron and Hermione walked into Honeydukes hand in hand. As soon as they got in Hermione’s eyes
fell on the Acid Pops.

“Those are Harry’s favourite. I’ll buy some for him,” she said. Ron got exasperated.

“Hermione we are supposed to be spending time together,” he reminded her. Hermione was
confused.

“That’s what we are doing. Let me get these sweets for Harry…” she was cut off by Ron.

“What the hell is your problem Hermione? First you get Harry to tag along with us. And when
we’re finally alone all you can do is buy sweets for Harry. Looks like you’re more concerned about
him than me,” he shouted at her. The whole shop was staring at them. Once again Ron had put them in
a false position. Without a word Hermione walked out of the shop.

Hermione didn’t wait for anybody. She went straight to the Head’s quarters. Ron’s behavior was
getting on her nerves. It was one step ahead and two steps back with him. She didn’t know how to
handle the present situation. Ron wasn’t capable of rational thinking.

Harry walked into their quarters later in the evening. He had heard about Ron and Hermione from
Justin, who was at Honeydukes during the incident. The two of them were constantly fighting.
According to him this relationship couldn’t last. But he was biased due to his new feelings for
Hermione. He cursed himself for thinking about Ron and Hermione’s unavoidable breakup.

“Thank God, you’re here Harry. You must have heard about Ron and me,” said Hermione, coming out
of her bedroom. “I was hoping you’d have some ideas about what I should do.”

“Hermione, perhaps I’m not the best person for this,” Harry said.

“What are you saying? You always have the best solutions for these problems. You solved my last
fight with Ron,” said Hermione desperately. She was depending on Harry.

“Things are different now,” said Harry without thinking. His advice would certainly be
biased.

“What’s different?” asked Hermione. This attitude from Harry confused her. He was always very
helpful. What had happened to him?

“Nothing. It’s just that you and Ron always fight. I can’t mediate every time. You should settle
it between yourselves,” replied Harry. Hermione gave up. Something was definitely up with
Harry.

That night Harry and Hermione were supposed to meet McGonagall, to submit the weekly report.
This was a part of their duties as Head students. When they were walking back they heard a noise
inside a classroom that was supposed to be empty. Both of them stopped walking.

“I’ll just check. You stand back. Most probably its nothing. Maybe a couple of students out of
bed,” said Harry. He took out his wand just to be on the safe side. The corridors were dark bur
there was enough light to recognize a person. Hermione warned him to be careful. The door of the
classroom was slightly open. Harry peeked in.

What he saw shocked him beyond belief. Two students were snogging madly. They were so involved
with one another that they had no clue about his presence. One of them was Ron and the girl was
none other than his ex Lavender Brown. Harry felt sick. He turned back with a disgusted look on his
face.

“What is it?” asked Hermione. She tried to make her way towards the door but Harry held her arm
tightly.

“Hermione, believe me when I say you don’t want to see this,” said Harry. He already knew that
Hermione wouldn’t listen to him. He was right.

“You can’t say that Harry. I haven’t even seen it,” she protested as she pulled herself away
from Harry. “Oh” was all she could say when she saw what was happening in the classroom. Both of
them walked back to their quarters in silence. Harry didn’t know what to say. He finally spoke when
they were in their common room.

“I’m really sorry. I know your relationship was going through troubled times but I had no idea
of this,” he said. He had expected Hermione to cry, shed tears, scream and abuse. However she
seemed remarkably calm.

“Harry, why is it that I’m not hurt by this. I should be shouting. Yes, I feel betrayed but
somehow I don’t feel like a girl would feel after finding out that her boyfriend was cheating on
her,” she said in a composed manner. Harry didn’t know what his reply should be. He thought she
needed comforting but that clearly wasn’t the case.

“Ron and I were never meant to be. Probably that’s the reason. Subconsciously I had realized
that before. If you are not sleepy I can tell you everything. We are just too different from one
another,” said Hermione. Both of them sat down on the sofa.

Hermione told Harry everything. She started with how the two of them got together. Then about
the incident in the Astronomy tower. Harry looked very angry on hearing that. The part about the
kiss after the quidditch match Harry already knew. This time Hermione also told him the nasty
things they had said to one another. Finally Hermione narrated the incidents at Honeydukes.

“I’m saying sorry again. I shouldn’t have got the two of you together. Your expectations from a
relationship are totally different. Ron wants to be physical while you want mutual affection. It’s
late now. We should sleep. Good luck for tomorrow. I know it’s not easy for you,” said Harry. Both
of them went into their bedrooms. Neither could sleep properly that night.

When Harry and Hermione went to the breakfast hall Ron was already there. He didn’t look any
different than usual. On seeing Hermione, he walked towards her. Harry purposely got away to give
them time alone. If he had waited with Hermione, it would have been difficult not to break Ron’s
bones.

“Hi Hermione, I’m so sorry about yesterday. It was my fault. I shouldn’t have shouted at you. I
was thinking about you all the time. I couldn’t sleep last night because I thought you would never
forgive me. Please say its okay Hermione. I promise not to fight with you again,” Ron said
dramatically. Hermione couldn’t believe Ron’s nerve. He was telling total lies without even
stuttering on one word.

“Ron, just bend down,” she said. Ron immediately bent down his head thinking that Hermione would
kiss him. “Close you eyes,” said Hermione. Ron was sure now. He closed his eyes with a smile on his
face. SLAP! Hermione slapped him with all her strength. Ron staggered. There was a stunned silence
in the great hall.

“What is the meaning of this Hermione?” shouted Ron.

“Well, for starters… we’re over.”



7. A  Harsh Lesson for Ron
--------------------------

**A/N: Thank you everyone for the tremendous response to the last chapter. You all loved Ron
and Hermione’s breakup. The slap seemed to be very popular. Most of the reviews mentioned it. I was
surprised not to be flamed by Ron fans. Guess there aren’t too many of them. Please keep up the
reviews. The previous response really motivated me.**

**This chapter is mainly about Ron. Sorry to all the Harry/Hermione fans. You do get to see
them but you’ll have to wait another couple of chapters for them to get together. Happy
reading!**

Chapter Seven: A Harsh Lesson for Ron

“Come on Hermione! You can’t be serious. All couples have small disagreements like we did. We’ll
get over it in no time,” said Ron, holding his cheek. It was still stinging.

“Ron, if you want this to end in a dignified manner come to the common room with me. Everyone is
watching here and despite what you have done I do not wish to humiliate you publicly any more. She
started walking towards the common room. Ron followed her.

“So you say you were thinking about me last night. Where were you thinking? I’ll tell you. In
the empty classroom in the second floor. With Lavender Brown all over you. Wasn’t it?” said
Hermione, sarcastically. Ron looked dazed.

“Damn… you had to see that, didn’t you? Fine, I’ll tell you the truth. I was out for a late
night stroll when I met Lavender. She took me to the empty classroom with some excuse and then
forced herself upon me. All I did was to try and push her back but she was incessant. I’m sorry you
had to see that,” he said.

“I admire your ability to lie without hesitation. But it won’t work this time. I and Harry were
coming back after meeting McGonagall. We saw each and everything. You were too busy to even notice
us staring at you. You were both over each other. In fact I have doubts over how far you went last
night. I hope we don’t see a fatter Lavender in the near future,” said Hermione.

“Don’t you dare speak like that about me!” shouted Ron.

“Don’t you dare cheat on others Ronald Weasley! I should be hurting over you but somehow I’m
not. I think in my mind I knew what a big prat you were,” shouted back Hermione. At that moment
Harry walked into the common room. Hermione, having had enough, went into the quarters.

“It’s taking every bit of my restraint not to beat you black and blue but would you care to
explain your actions? Lies won’t work with me. I saw everything last night,” asked Harry
dangerously. Ron swallowed. Harry seemed very angry.

“See, whenever Hermione and I kissed I didn’t get the expected reaction from her. So you can say
I was sexually frustrated. I don’t mean it literally. Hermione seemed conservative as far as this
was concerned. I still liked her though. Last night during a stroll I bumped into Lavender. Some of
our old spark returned. Before I knew she was kissing me. Since I didn’t get much of that from
Hermione, I got carried away. It was just a one off thing. I would never deliberately cheat on
Hermione,” replied Ron nervously.

“I’m disgusted at how shallow you are. Kissing is all you can think of, when you are with a
girl. That’s gross. I’m glad Hermione caught you early or she may have got serious,” said
Harry.

“Harry please try and understand. Every guy likes kissing a girl. I’m sorry I got carried away
with Lavender. She means nothing to me,” pleaded Ron.

“Do you mean to say all that was an act or are you too scared to admit the truth,” said Lavender
coming into the room with Parvati. Both the girls had very serious looks on their faces. Ron grew
even more nervous.

“Lavender this is not your concern. Please stay out of this,” said Ron, pointing a finger
towards Lavender.

“Since when do you decide what my concern is and what is not?” asked Lavender, without moving an
inch.

“What on earth is going on here? Ron, you said Lavender meant nothing to you and yesterday’s
events were one off. Why don’t you tell her that?” shouted Harry. Ron didn’t reply. Hermione had
just come back into the common room. Before Harry could ask anything more, Lavender answered for
him.

“Harry, like you Ronald has been feeding me a bunch of lies. It’s true that we met during a
night stroll. But that was three weeks ago. Old sparks started flying and we kissed. I regretted it
immediately. I knew what we did was wrong since Ron was with Hermione. However Ron wouldn’t leave
me. He said his relationship with Hermione was only time pass and he liked me. He told me to be
secretive about what we shared. Despite having my doubts I agreed. I thought he really liked me.
But hearing the conversation between the two of you made me realize I was a fool,” she said. Harry
couldn’t believe all this. The funny, friendly Ron had turned into a fraud. Hermione acted as if
she expected something like this from Ron. Now Neville, Seamus and Dean were also in the common
room. So the drama was unfolding before the whole seventh year.

If this was shocking, what happened next was unbelievable. Parvati Patil, who had been standing
besides Lavender all this while collapsed to the floor, crying softly. Lavender and Hermione rushed
to her, concerned.

“What’s the matter Parvati?” asked Lavender.

“He…,” started pointing towards Ron, but broke down again.

“Don’t say you’ve got something to do with this also,” said Neville angrily to Ron. Ron made no
reply. Parvati took a few minutes to regain her composure.

“Like Hermione and Lavender, I too have been one of Ron’s victims. The only difference is I was
more serious than two of them. So it hurts a lot more. He actually told me we had a future
together. We started much the same way as Ron and Lavender but not at night. He kissed me and I
thought we were getting closer. Of course we kept it secret due to Hermione. I hoped we would be
able to make it official sometime next year. But obviously he had other plans…,” Parvati said,
still sobbing lightly. Everyone in the room was too stunned speak. Seamus was the first to
speak.

“Are these it or are there some more?” he shouted. Ron just bowed his head. Harry walked up to
him.

“A few minutes ago I wanted to break every bone in your body but now I feel my hands will be
infected if I make any contact with you. You are beneath contempt. I fail to understand how you
could become like this after living with such nice people all your life. Your parents, your
siblings baring Percy, your friends and housemates always treated you well. Anyway… I won’t waste
my time speaking to a piece of shit like you,” sneered Harry. He turned his back and walked into
the quarters. Hermione followed him in. The other students also dispersed leaving Ron totally alone
in the common room.

He sat thinking about the past few minutes. All his beans were spilled. He had continued his
relationship with Hermione during the day while he met Lavender and Parvati every alternate night.
He knew that his plan was risky but he had got so used to it that he couldn’t stop. It was like an
addiction. His lust had cost him dearly. All the seventh year Gryffindor students knew about his
misdeeds. Soon the whole school would know. He would be a total outcaste.

**** ****

Ron was right. Within the next few days he was absolutely isolated. Nobody greeted him anytime.
Whenever he entered the common room the others walked away. He was having difficulties in his
studies but he had no Hermione to consult. He wondered what would happen once quidditch practice
resumed. Would he be sacked? Harry being the captain didn’t help. He was very lonely. Even Ginny
refused to speak to him. When he had tried corner her, she threatened him by saying she’ll tell
their mother everything. That was something Ron couldn’t let happen. He wasn’t fond of his mother’s
anger. The last thing he needed was a Howler. He really needed to talk to someone but there was
nobody to listen to him. It was very frustrating. Finally he was able to think of one last option.
Since none of the students spoke to him he had to try outside the students. Only two people came to
his mind. Hagrid and Professor Lupin. Though he was more comfortable with Hagrid, he thought
Professor Lupin would be able to deal with his problem better.

During the weekend Ron knocked on Lupin’s office.

“Come in,” said Lupin. Ron tentatively walked in. “Hello Ron, why did you want to meet me?”
Lupin asked. Ron took a deep breath. Summoning all his courage he told Lupin everything. There was
a big risk involved. If Lupin treated him like the other students had, he’d be a villain in front
of the teachers as well. To his relief Lupin heard him out. His face kept growing graver but he
didn’t interrupt Ron.

“Why did you do this Ron?” Lupin asked when Ron had finished.

“Professor I wasn’t in my mind. It was as if things were happening automatically. I knew I was
doing the wrong thing but couldn’t stop myself. I don’t know what to do now. Nobody even looks at
me,” said Ron quietly. He was trying to stay strong but was finding it increasingly difficult. His
voice choked during the last sentence. Lupin paced up and down his office.

“You remind me of someone I knew very well. Harry’s father James. He was a big flirt during his
fifth and sixth years. He must have snogged most girls in the school. But everyone knew he was like
that. So they never got serious with him. He didn’t hide his character. So he never really had a
proper girlfriend. That was until he got together with Lily. From that day he stopped his bad
habits. Lily was initially hesitant to get serious but on seeing the changes in James she began
trusting him completely. James obviously knew that she was the perfect girl for him. Probably you
have to wait for your perfect girl. So there is still hope for you. As for facing the others, it’ll
take time. Try to do well in quidditch. That will help,” said Lupin.

“Thank you Sir. It was very kind of you to help me out. I really needed someone to talk to,”
replied Ron, thankfully.

“Don’t think for a moment I appreciate your actions but if you need any more help, I’m
available,” Lupin said. Ron smiled at him before leaving.

**** ****

Despite the talk with Lupin things hardly improved for Ron over the next few days. Nobody cared
about him. Ron knew that he had brought this upon himself. He was looking forward to quidditch
practice. That was his only chance of redemption.

Harry was walking through the corridor when somebody stopped him. It was Luna Lovegood.

“If you’re free can I talk to you?” she asked. Harry nodded. He and Luna hadn’t spoken much
since Halloween.

“It’s about Ron. You are the only one who knows about it. I’ve heard everything he did with
Hermione, Lavender and Parvati. I thought I’d hate him like everyone else but surprisingly that
hasn’t happened. Whatever my feelings were, they remain. I can’t help it. If anything my feelings
have increased because Ron is single now. You must be thinking I’m a fool but as I said I can’t
help it. So what do you think I should do?” Luna asked.

“I can’t dictate how you feel so it’s not a problem with me. However I should warn you that like
in the case of the others, he might break your heart,” Harry replied.

“At least then I’ll be able to stop feeling like this about him. He looks so lonely Harry. Don’t
you think you think you should try and talk to him,” Luna asked.

“I feel like vomiting every time I see him. Luna, how is that you still want to trust him?”
Harry said.

“Perhaps Ron did not find the right girl. Maybe he was too eager to have a girlfriend so he got
involved with Hermione. Things didn’t work out and he looked elsewhere. Had Hermione been the right
girl for him, he may not have turned out like this. It’s just a theory but can’t be ruled out,”
replied Luna.

“You seem to be quite optimistic. I can’t imagine Hermione not being the right girl. So you feel
you are the right girl for him?” asked Harry. Luna blushed.

“I may be but unless I give it a go I wouldn’t know that,” she said shyly. Harry admired Luna’s
attempts.

“If you want it, go ahead. I’m nobody to stop you. I just don’t want you to be hurt. And wait
for a few more days before trying to be friendly with him. You may get alienated by others if they
see you talking to Ron,” said Harry. Luna smiled at him.

“Thanks Harry. You’ve been a big help,” said Luna. They walked together to the Great Hall where
they had to part ways.

Hermione meanwhile was not having a very good time. She wasn’t hurt by Ron’s cheating, which was
a good thing. Had she got serious with him, it would have been very tough. Even Ginny took a month
to get over Harry. Hermione didn’t need that time. Still Hermione was shaken. One of her oldest
friends had betrayed her. She was in a depressed state of mind. She had found out that Ron turned
to Lavender because he wasn’t satisfied by their kisses. Though she never really wanted to kiss
Ron, now she was having doubts over her own kissing ability. She hardly spoke to anyone except
Harry. Having him around was great help. He had treated her with a great degree of intelligence. He
let her be when she needed to be alone, he was approachable for any of her problems and he was the
biggest source of comfort she had.

Despite Harry, Hermione wanted some adult advice on the matter. So she wrote a letter to her
mother explaining that had happened with Ron. She even mentioned Ron’s simultaneous affairs with
Parvati and Lavender, the aftermath, her present feelings and Harry’s help. She knew her parents
would hate Ron but she didn’t care. Just as she finished the letter, Harry walked in.

“Hi, how have you been?” he asked.

“Much the same,” replied Hermione.

“Hermione it’s time you got over this depression. Ron isn’t worth this. I know things have been
horrible for you but one has to move on,” said Harry. Hermione nodded but didn’t say anything.

“I think I know what you need. We need to have some fun,” he said.

Next evening Harry led Hermione to the Hogwarts kitchens. She was curious to find out what Harry
had planned for her. They were greeted in the kitchen by Dobby, Winky and Kreacher.

“Let’s start with some food,” said Harry. The Houselves brought a lot of food to the table.
Hermione was amazed to see so much food. Most of the food items were deserts. She had just started
on a sausage roll when Harry started laughing. Hermione stared at him.

“Do I have something on my face?” she asked consciously. Harry continued laughing. Hermione
looked behind her. There was nothing there. Exasperated, she got back to her food. She noticed
Harry had stopped laughing. As she looked up, she saw Harry had disappeared from his seat.

“Harry, what game are you playing?” she said loudly. SPLAT! Something soft hit her square on the
face. It was chocolate truffle.

“You are going to pay for that Harry! What do you mean?” shouted Hermione. “If you have the
guts, why don’t you face me,” she added. SPLAT! This time a pineapple pastry hit her on the neck.
At the same moment Harry reappeared laughing hysterically. He had been under the disillusionment
charm.

“What are you going do Granger?” he asked, standing right in front of her. He closed his eyes to
show that he didn’t expect her to do anything. Hermione couldn’t miss this opportunity. She took
the jug of pumpkin juice and emptied it on Harry’s head. Harry was taken by total surprise. He
opened his eyes and both of them started laughing.

“A food fight. That’s what you’d planned,” said Hermione.

“Yes, that was my plan. The Houselves helped me. I paid them five Galleons each. And don’t think
I’m finished,” he said, throwing a handful of orange marmalade on her. Hermione responded with a
bowl of custard. This continued for several minutes. At one point Harry ran away. Hermione chased
him around the kitchen. Unfortunately she slipped on some juice on the floor.

“Ouch!” she cried. Harry rushed to her. It would be a disaster if this evening of fun ended with
an injury.

“Are you alright?” he asked in a concerned voice.

“Just pull me up. I think I’m okay,” replied Hermione. Harry gave her his hand not noticing the
cheeky grin on her face. Soon his face was covered with tomato sauce.

“You can certainly fool people with foot injuries. First Ron and now me. You are wicked,” he
said. After they had had enough they finally ate some food.

“Thanks for the lovely evening Harry. I had a whale of a time. I feel better already. I really
needed something like this,” said Hermione sincerely, as they entered the Head’s quarters. Harry
just smiled before entering his bedroom. Hermione’s eyes fell on a letter on the table. It was from
her mother.

*Dear Hermione,*

*I was very sorry to read about what you’ve been through this year. Though I didn’t have
anything against Ron, I never imagined you’d ever go out with him. I felt you were closer to Harry
than Ron. It’s good that you are not hurt by his stupid actions. Being cheated is the biggest
nightmare for a girl of your age.*

*You said you feel awkward in facing the other students. Don’t feel that way. What happened
was not your fault. The others must be feeling that you are hurt so they aren’t wrong in showing
sympathy towards you. You have no reason to feel embarrassed by their concern. In fact be happy
that you have so many well wishers. As for Ron, you can keep ignoring him for the time being. He is
getting what he deserves. I’m proud of you for feeling sorry for somebody who has just broken your
heart. Later on you can follow Harry’s actions as far as Ron is concerned.*

*Finding the right guy is never easy. Most of the time you can’t find him if you search for
him. For instance your father and I met by accident. He had come to my college to attend a seminar,
we met, talked and the rest is one long story. Just make sure you know his intentions beforehand.
You should have realized Ron’s intentions when he kissed you passionately just minutes after you
got together. If not then, the* *Astronomy* *Tower* *incident was a big warning.
When you realize that your ideas don’t match either talk it over or call it quits. Evading the
problem is no solution. The fact that you felt uncomfortable to talk to him shows that you two
weren’t meant for each other.*

*The last thing I’d like to say is, keep your friends close at a time like this. I guess Harry
would be your best friend now. Your description of his handling of the situation shows that he is
very mature. If you need any help, ask him. He’s sure to help you.*

*That’s all for now.*

*With Love,*

*Mum.*

Hermione felt a lot better. First it was the food fight with Harry and now the letter from her
mother. She was relieved that her parents had been supportive. They could have been angry with her
for getting into such a situation. And of course there was Harry. She could turn to him whenever
she wanted. He was always there for her.

**** ****

During the first week of December quidditch practice restarted. Harry was in a difficult
position as far as Ron was concerned. The unanimous opinion of the rest of the team was to sack him
for his actions. He hadn’t spoken to Ron in a long time. He waited for the day of practice to make
his final decision. Ron had appeared for the practice. All the players looked at Harry expecting
him to complete the formalities.

“Tell him that he’s not needed,” said Dean.

“How dare he show up like this after what he did?” shouted Dennis Creevey.

“Please finish this fast Harry. We have a lot to do,” said Damelza.

“Shall I go with the public opinion Ron? They all want you out,” said Harry, looking at Ron for
the first time. Ron didn’t say anything. If he was right, Harry never cared about public opinion.
He did what he felt was right.

“I’m talking to you strictly as a professional. Don’t think everything if cool. Your off the
field behavior has been atrocious. However this is a quidditch team we are talking about. Whatever
the case may be, you are still the best keeper in Gryffindor. So I am giving you a chance to retain
your position. But the slightest bit of indiscipline and you’ll be out. Do you understand that?”
asked Harry seriously. Ron nodded meekly. He was getting angry at Harry for speaking to him like
this but he couldn’t afford to blow up. This was his only chance at redemption.

Though the rest of the team wasn’t happy with Harry’s decision they agreed to it since he was
the captain. The practice passed without much incident. Nobody spoke to Ron. After practice Ron
called Harry aside.

“Thanks Harry for what you did,” said Ron shortly. Harry nodded and walked away without a word.
Ron sighed. It was a long road ahead for him.

On the whole Ron was satisfied with the way things had gone during the quidditch practice. It
could have been a lot worse. He’d performed reasonably well. Nobody had been able to point a finger
at him. He was keen on talking to Lupin. As he was about to knock on his door he heard voices from
inside.

“Why do you have to be so stubborn, Remus? Why do you deny what we have?” cried the voice of
Tonks. Ron recognized the voice at once. He knew he shouldn’t be eavesdropping but his curiosity
got the better of him.

“Nymph I’ve told you it’s not safe for you to be with me,” replied Remus calmly. Ron nearly
laughed aloud at the nickname Remus had given Tonks.

“Yet I want to be with you. Does that mean anything to you? Haven’t you learned anything from
Bill and Fleur? Bill’s condition is much the same as yours. Did Fleur give up on him because of
that? If anything, it has got them closer. See how much the Weasleys love Fleur now. Why can’t we
be together like them?” asked Tonks desperately.

“You are testing my patience Nymph. If it hadn’t been for my condition I wouldn’t think twice
about what you’re saying. I just want you to be happy Nymph,” said Remus softly.

“If you really want me to be happy you’ll stop me from getting out of this room. After today
I’ll never bother you with this,” said Tonks finally. Ron stiffened on hearing the approaching
footsteps of Tonks.

“Wait Nymph…,” shouted Remus. Ron relaxed but couldn’t help peeking in through the keyhole.

Tonks turned around. Remus was walking towards her. She rushed into his arms. They hugged for a
very long time. It looked like both of them were crying. When the hug ended they kissed. Ron felt
he had seen enough. He didn’t want to disturb Remus at the moment. The sight of the two of them
moved him deeply. Had he felt like this for any one of the three girls, he wouldn’t be in this
position. Had he felt like that for someone any other girl couldn’t have tempted him away from her.
That night he had a strange dream.

*He was alone in the Great Hall. It was very bright. His eyes were wrinkled due to the excess
of light. Suddenly somebody entered the room. It was a woman. She was dressed in white. Ron
couldn’t see her face as it was covered by a veil.*

*“Who are you?” asked Ron.*

*“You don’t need to know that. But I’m here to help you. Tell me, are you ashamed of what you
did to Hermione, Parvati and Lavender?” said the woman.*

*“Yes, I’m really sorry for that. I’m being punished well enough for that,” replied
Ron.*

*“That you are. Do you have any questions?” the woman said.*

*“How do I know I really like a girl?” asked Ron.*

*“That is something I cannot describe to you but believe me when you come across a girl whom
you really like, you’ll know it yourself. Nobody will have to tell you that. You’ll feel different
when you’re near her. Her absence will make you feel incomplete,” replied the woman.*

*“What if I hurt her like the others?” asked Ron.*

*“You will never hurt her like you hurt the others. You won’t be able to. However you may have
fights or disagreements. Like any other couple you’ll have to find your way around those,” said the
woman.*

*“What do I do to regain the trust of the others? It’s a lonely life for me at the moment,”
asked Ron.*

*“That is something for you to figure out. You got yourself into this position so you have to
work your way out of it. Just remember lies will get you nowhere. You need to be truthful to others
as well as yourself,” replied the woman.*

*“Thank you very much for the help but I want to know who you are,” said Ron.*

*“As I said you don’t need to know that. Remember what I said,” said the woman.*

*“But…,” started Ron but the woman had disappeared.*



8. Getting Closer
-----------------

**A/N: Thanks again for the great response to the last chapter. All of you liked Ron being
given a chance. This chapter is mainly filler. But both the ships show signs of sailing here. There
is a lot of description in this chapter rather than dialogue so some of you may find it slightly
boring. But please read on anyway. The next chapter is a surprise for you all. It will be posted on
Christmas Eve and will describe Christmas Eve and Christmas at Hogwarts. Stay tuned for that.
(Haven’t I given away too much of the surprise?)**

Chapter Eight: Getting Closer

With all that had taken place in the past couple of weeks, Harry’s feelings for Hermione had
taken the backseat. However they were very much present. Harry had started seeing Hermione in a
totally different way since Halloween. Initially he had been a bit awkward around her but he got
over that quickly. Then the whole incident with Ron happened. In that situation Hermione needed a
friend desperately. Harry gave her the support she had needed. Normally he wouldn’t have been able
to do it for a girl to whom he was attracted. But with Hermione it was different. Physical
attraction came way below emotional, mental and logistical support. That is what made Harry feel
that his feelings for Hermione were true and not another passing infatuation. He had been able to
help her out because he knew her so well. He didn’t know Cho or Ginny half as well as he knew
Hermione. So he would never have been able to be there for them.

After what had happened with Ron, Harry could have got excited and immediately moved in on
Hermione. But he knew Hermione wouldn’t want that. He could have taken advantage of her emotional
instability to get them together. Still he didn’t do it. He wanted the two of them to share
something which was pure and not caused by other events. He had again and again resisted the urge
to use Felix Felices. If he and Hermione were meant to be together that would happen. No force in
nature would be able to stop it. However if they weren’t meant to be he wouldn’t start something
just like that.

Luna was walking back from the Care of Magical Creatures class. It was a cold day so nobody was
outside. To her surprise she saw a figure walking around in the quidditch field. As she got closer
she noticed it was Ron. This was the perfect opportunity to speak to him. Nobody could see the two
of them. She crept up behind him, feeling a bit nervous.

“Hello Ronald,” said Luna. Ron stopped walking. Nobody had spoken to him after the Hermione
incident except for Harry during quidditch practice. It seemed to him as if a ghost was teasing
him. Or was it another dream like the one he had had a few days back. “Am I dreaming or is someone
actually here?” he asked quietly without turning back.

“Yes somebody is here,” replied Luna. Ron slowly turned. He felt slightly disappointed that it
was only Luna.

“Hi Loony… I mean Luna,” said Ron uncertainly.

“Your vocal chords are in perfect working order so you can speak confidently. I know they
haven’t had much exercise lately but that is not a problem,” said Luna.

“Why have you come here Luna? If others see you with me they’ll stop talking to you as well. You
don’t want that, do you? I am a criminal. You don’t want to associate yourself with me. Go back,”
said Ron, speaking quite fast.

“I know perfectly well what I’m doing. I just thought since nobody was listening to your side of
the story, you’d like to tell me. Maybe explain your actions. But since you don’t want that I’ll go
back. I was a fool to offer you support,” said Luna with a hurt expression. This wasn’t going like
she had hoped.

“Wait Luna! I didn’t mean that. It’s been very difficult for me. Perhaps I’ve forgotten what to
say when. I appreciate your coming but why would want to talk to me after what I did?” asked
Ron.

“There is no excuse for what you did but you still deserve a chance to explain yourself. Even a
murderer is not hanged without a trial. Since I’m not seeing anyone giving you that chance I
decided to come and speak to you,” replied Luna. Things were easing slightly.

“I’m sorry we can’t go inside. I don’t want you to be seen with me. So we’ll have to make do in
this cold. I’ll start a fire if you want. Thanks for giving me a chance to explain. I waited for
someone to come up to me for a long time but nobody came. So I went and spoke my mind to Professor
Lupin. He obviously didn’t like my actions. However he was very helpful. Had it not been for him
and quidditch practice I would have gone insane,” said Ron.

“That was clever of you. Professor Lupin is a good man. He helped you out despite what you did.
So do you want to talk about it?” asked Luna. Ron nodded. He explained everything to her like he
had done to Lupin. He even told her the parts he had skipped with Lupin. Talking to someone of his
own age was a blessing for Ron.

“Just tell me one thing Ron. Had you really liked Hermione, would you still have let things
happen with Lavender and Parvati?” asked Luna.

“It’s difficult for me to answer since I didn’t like Hermione that way. I don’t mean it
negatively. Our interests didn’t match. I should have ended things with her as soon as I realized
this. However if I ever truly like a girl I won’t be able to hurt her. I know this much,” said
Ron.

“Ron, you are talking so intelligently now. Why did you do such a thing? Things wouldn’t be like
this if you had used your intelligence before,” said Luna.

“I wish I had this intelligence back then. Since I’m alone most of the time I get a lot of time
to think. I’ve realized all this after the damage was done. It’s very frustrating but I’ve brought
this upon myself,” replied Ron.

“It’s good that you told me all this. At least I won’t think that badly of you now. If you ever
want to talk to me again just send me an owl,” said Luna.

“Luna thanks a lot for this. I’ve been very lonely as you can imagine. Talking to you was very
nice. I’ll take that offer. I’ll definitely want to talk to you again. As you pointed I need to
exercise my vocal chords,” joked Ron. Luna smiled at him before making her way back to the castle.
This was a start for sure.

**** ****

The seventh years had a special Hogsmede weekend for Christmas shopping. None of the other years
were allowed to go. As the senior most students, it was one of their many privileges. On the
morning of the visit Harry met Hermione in their common room.

“So you’ve decided what all to buy?” asked Harry conversationally.

“Oh yes! I’ve even made a list of gifts,” replied Hermione.

“Trust Hermione Granger to do that! Is there anything for which you don’t need a list?” joked
Harry pretending to laugh.

“It’s good to be organized. Like it or not I will continue like this all my life,” said Hermione
firmly.

“I didn’t mean it like that Hermione. It was just a joke. I like you exactly as you are. I
wouldn’t dream of changing any part of you,” said Harry in an apologetic tone. Hermione seemed to
soften.

“It’s okay Harry. My sense of humor seems to have disappeared. The food fight helped me to get
some of it. Maybe we could do something like that again,” said Hermione.

“I have an idea. What about a snow fight? This time we won’t restrict it to ourselves. We’ll let
everyone else join. In fact we could have a tournament of snow games. You’ll really enjoy that,”
replied Harry. Hermione nodded excitedly.

“I’ll put up a notice soon. This seems fun,” said Hermione. Both of them walked down for
breakfast. They would be going to Hogsmede together. Not as a couple but only to give company to
one another.

Hogsmede was less crowded than usual. Harry and Hermione easily found place at The Three
Broomsticks. They both had a couple of butterbears. As they entered Honeydukes memories flooded
Hermione’s mind. This was the last place which she and Ron had visited together. Harry knew this
and could sense Hermione’s uneasiness.

“Would you like it if we went somewhere else?” asked Harry.

“No, I need to get over all this idiocy. We’ll stay here,” replied Hermione in a determined
voice. She feared how Lavender and Parvati had taken the breakup. Despite not liking Ron she was
having difficulties.

After spending time at Honeydukes and Zonko’s Harry parted ways with Hermione. Both of them
wanted to do their Christmas shopping separately. Harry wondered if he should get something for
Ron. Ron had been horrible but he had been a very good friend of Harry’s for almost seven years.
Also it would put him in a difficult situation if Ron sent him something and he didn’t have
anything for him. Finally he decided on a box of sweets for him. He got tricks from Zonko’s for
Ginny, Luna and Dean. He got chocolates for Seamus, Parvati and Lavender. He specially got socks
for Dobby, Winky and Kreacher. Kreacher had improved a lot since Sirius’ death so Harry wanted to
reward him. The gift for Hermione would be the most difficult. He guessed she would be tired of
getting books from everybody.

Hermione on the other hand was having an easier time. She had everything written down properly.
Even she had got a small gift for Ron. It was a quill set. She didn’t get anything for Harry. She
had his gift back in her bedroom. She met Lavender in one of the shops. They both started looking
at a few necklaces.

“Wow! This one is beautiful,” said Hermione, putting it on.

“It looks stunning on you Hermione,” said Lavender sincerely.

“I’m buying this,” said Hermione looking for the price tag. Her face fell instantly. “Forget it.
It’s too expensive. Hundred and Seventy Galleons are not worth it but I really liked it.”

“That’s a pity. Hundred and Seventy is too much but you looked great with it,” replied Lavender.
Both of them walked out of the shop, Hermione slightly disappointed. They hadn’t noticed Harry
witnessing the whole scene from the window. His problem was solved. Since he had inherited Sirius’
fortune money was not a problem. He got the necklace without hesitation.

**** ****

Before the students went home for Christmas the seventh year would be having their pre NEWTs
examinations. These examinations were held in December and March to help them prepare for their
NEWTs. All students were taking this seriously. Since the syllabus was small it was relatively easy
to study. To avoid the crowd Harry and Hermione had study sessions in the common room of their
quarters. Hermione was usually the first to finish. Often she used to help him.

During one of these sessions Harry couldn’t concentrate on his work. He kept looking here and
there. Suddenly he caught sight of Hermione deep in her work. His eyes got glued to the spot. This
was the Hermione he knew. Intelligent, serious and studious. A strand of her hair was coming in
front of her eyes but she wasn’t even bothering to remove it. He could see her biting her lower lip
when she was going over something difficult. He was mesmerized by the sight. His feeling at the
moment proved that his liking for her was real. He liked the sight of her in her most
characteristic form. He kept watching her like this for a few minutes. When Hermione looked up, she
saw Harry was staring at her hypnotized.

“Are you alright Harry?” she asked.

“I l…” Harry stopped. “I left my book in the bedroom,” he said, getting up. Hermione looked at
him confused. He certainly wasn’t studying. The book he was looking for in his bedroom was in his
hand.

Harry couldn’t believe what he had almost said. That would have ruined everything between him
and Hermione. He felt like an idiot for not realizing his feelings earlier. Then Hermione wouldn’t
have had to go through the Ron episode. That was provided she liked him back. He had to be careful
from now. He couldn’t lose Hermione. Maybe he could tell her about his feelings later but this was
not the time.

The pre NEWTs went well for most people. After the last exam Harry and Hermione got what they
had wanted. Snow. This was the best time for a Snow Fight Tournament. She put on a notice.

*We invite everyone for a Snow Fight Tournament on the 20th of December on the
Hogwarts grounds at 2:00 pm. Hope you will be joining us.*

*Hermione Granger*

*Head Girl.*

There was a huge crowd for the Snow Fight on the twentieth. This was the first time such an
event was taking place at Hogwarts. Most of the students were present. All of them had to get into
pairs for the tournament. Harry explained the rules.

“The first part of the tournament is based on artistic skill. You’ll have to make a snowman in
half an hour. The pair with the best snowman will win. Professor Tonks and Professor Longbottom
will choose the winners. The second part will be more interesting. Everyone has to try and throw
down the other snowmen while protecting your own. You’ll be using snowballs as your weapon. You can
protect your snowman using any part of your body. The last snowman that remains standing will win.
So let’s get started!” he announced.

The tournament was a big success. Padma Patil and Adam Gilchrist of Ravenclaw won the snowman
competition. The fight was great fun. Students were throwing their bodies to stop their snowmen
from being hit. By the time things ended everyone was covered with snow. Colin and Dennis Creevey
were victorious. The sixth year prefects decided to have the same tournament again next year.

The next day most students were leaving for home for the Christmas break. Hermione had decided
to stay back since her parents would be leaving for France midway through the holidays. She and
Harry had just come out of their quarters when they saw Ron approaching them.

“Hi, can I have a word with the two of you?” he asked tentatively. Hermione nodded.

“I haven’t really apologized for my actions but I know it wouldn’t have had any effect. So
firstly I should say sorry. I should have been frank with from the beginning, Hermione. As you must
have realized things weren’t working between us and we never faced our problems as we should have.
Harry, thanks again for giving me a chance in quidditch. Had it not been for quidditch, I would
have gone mad. I know I don’t deserve this but please give me a chance to make things normal again.
I don’t want your answer now. I’m going home for the holidays, so please think it over. I’d really
appreciate it,” Ron said at length.

Hermione was surprised by this. She hadn’t imagined Ron could think this out so rationally.
“Have you spoken about this to anyone?” she asked.

“Well, I’d thought it out mostly myself but over the past few days I’ve spoken to Luna Lovegood
a few times. She’s the only person to have spoken to me since ‘that’ happened. I’m really grateful
to her,” Ron said.

“Enjoy your holidays Ron. We’ll think over what you said,” said Harry politely. Ron smiled and
walked away. He was happy that Harry and Hermione had heard him out. He had tried to give the
impression that he was genuinely sorry, which he was.

“So how did it go?” asked a voice from behind.

“What are you doing here Luna? You shouldn’t be seen with me,” said Ron in a panicked voice.

“Remember we are trying to get back to normal. That’s why you spoke to Harry and Hermione. And I
just asked you how it went,” said Luna calmly. Ron relaxed.

“It was as good as it could have been. They heard me out and said they’ll think about it,” said
Ron.

“That’s good. I’m sure they’ll be fair to you. Have a nice holiday and come back fresh. Forget
all that has happened. You have to be in good spirits,” said Luna encouragingly before starting to
move away.

“Wait Luna,” said Ron, “I just want to thank you for all that you’ve done for me. You were the
only one who still believed in me. I promise you one thing. I will not disappoint you again,” said
Ron sincerely.

**** ****

With just a couple of days to go before Christmas Harry and Hermione were the only seventh years
from Gryffindor left at Hogwarts. So they spent a lot of time together. There were no classes,
which made their academic pressure light. Hermione like always insisted on spending a few hours
everyday on studies.

“Hermione this is holiday season. We are supposed to have fun,” pleaded Harry, who was in no
mood to work.

“I don’t deny that Harry. But would it kill you to spend an hour or two on your work? We have a
whole lot of time left to enjoy,” countered Hermione. Harry knew that it was pointless arguing with
her.

“Fine, I’ll make a deal with you. We’ll study on all days except Christmas Eve and Christmas. Is
that fine with you?” asked Harry.

“You got a deal. Anyway I’ve finished my work for now,” replied Hermione.

“What do you think about Ron after our brief meeting,” asked Harry. Hermione sighed.

“I want to forgive him but I still don’t trust him. I’m not sure if he meant what he said. For
all we know, he could be fooling us again. He seems to have gauged the situation quite well. Let’s
see. We’ll take things as they come. No need to rush into anything,” said Hermione
thoughtfully.

“I agree with you completely. What he did was very wrong but he has been our friend for a long
time. We need to equate the two sides and see which is stronger. Come on now we need to meet
McGonagall,” said Harry. They left their quarters. A notice caught their attention.

*This year Hogwarts will be hosting a Christmas party. Such parties used to be held a long
time ago but were discontinued due to the rise of dark forces. Since that is not an issue anymore,
we have decided to restart the tradition. The party will be held on the night of 24th
December and will continue till* *midnight**. There will be special food cooked by
Houselves who are coming from* *India**.*

*We invite all of you to attend this party. It will commence at* *9:00 pm* *at the
Great Hall.*

*Minerva McGonagall,*

*Headmistress.*

“Wow, this looks good,” commented Harry.

“I hope they serve Indian food. I love it,” said Hermione.

Next morning Harry woke up early. Only a day remained for Christmas. Since Hermione hadn’t woken
up yet he decided to loll around. He took out the necklace he had bought for Hermione and imagined
her wearing it. It would look awesome on her. No wonder she had liked it so much.

Even after Harry had completed his morning ablutions there was no sign of Hermione. He decided
to wake her up. Hermione’s bedroom door wasn’t bolted. In fact it was partially open. As he entered
his feet stopped moving.

Hermione was sleeping peacefully on her bed. She had a content look on her face. Her hair was
loose and was scattered all over. The sight influenced Harry a great deal. It was like the time he
had got spellbound during studying with her. He could hear her breathing softly. He didn’t know why
but it sounded like music to his ear. Her chest was moving up and down with her breath. To Harry it
seemed like the movement of a fairy floating in the sky. He was totally awestruck by the sight in
front of him. Normally teenage girls needed to do a lot to get guys staring at them like this. But
the simple sight of Hermione sleeping had affected Harry like this. How could he go on like this?
Hermione in her most simple forms had got him to goggle at her madly. It was incredible.

It was here Harry made a firm decision. He would tell Hermione how he felt about her. It was a
total U-turn on what he had decided earlier but he had to do this. He didn’t know how or when he’d
do it. He was sure that Hermione was the girl for him. Nobody could come anywhere near her. A
simple question from Luna had got him to realize this. Since the school was relatively empty now,
this would be the best time to tell her the truth. If she didn’t feel the same way……… Harry didn’t
even want to think about that. If the situation arose he’d handle it then. But there was no turning
back on this decision now. If he didn’t tell her, it would make things difficult between them. All
he wanted was the perfect moment to tell her.

“Wake up, Hermione. It’s Christmas Eve.”



9. My Heart Will Go On
----------------------

**A/N: It may not be Christmas Eve at many places in the west yet but it’s almost two in the
morning here. You can guess by the chapter name what this chapter is about. This is what all of you
have been waiting for patiently. Please review this chapter. I’m especially interested in all your
comments on this chapter. A big Thank you to all those who reviewed the previous chapter. Wishing
all readers a Merry Christmas. Hope you have a wonderful time.**

Chapter Nine: My Heart Will Go On

*
You're here, there's nothing I fear,
And I know that my heart will go on
We'll stay forever this way
You are safe in my heart
And my heart will go on and on*

*-Love Theme from ‘Titanic’, sung by Celine Dion*

It was a lovely morning. Harry and Hermione spent the morning wrapping their Christmas gifts and
sending them out. Harry kept stealing glances at Hermione and wondered if it was time to tell
her.

“You got something for Ron, didn’t you?” asked Hermione.

“Yes, I’ve got him a box of sweets. I already saw the quill set you got for him,” said Harry.
They had to use plenty of school owls as the load was too much for Hedwig.

“Do I get a hint of what you’re giving me?” asked Harry.

“Well, it’s not something I’ve bought. I’ve compiled it over the past few months. What about
me?” said Hermione.

“All that I can say is that you’ve already seen it,” said Harry smiling.

“How can that be? I couldn’t have seen your gift beforehand. I would have known then. But I have
no clue to what you are giving me,” replied Hermione intrigued.

“I’m not saying anything more. You’ll find out tomorrow,” said Harry, still grinning.

“You’re just playing games with me,” Hermione huffed. Once they had finished, they wondered how
to spend the time before the party. Harry had an idea.

“Hermione, you know with Voldemort gone we’ve lacked adventures and thrilling moments. We’ve
hardly broken any school rules,” said Harry.

“Exactly what do you have in your mind?” asked Hermione.

“How about the two of us sneak into Hogsmede? We’ve never seen it on Christmas Eve. Hagrid says
it is a wonderful sight,” replied Harry.

“I’m not so sure Harry. Both of us are Heads. If we are caught it could mean a lot of trouble.
Anyway how do you plan to get there?” asked Hermione.

“We have two options. The safer one would be the secret passage into Honeydukes. The adventurous
one would be flying on a broomstick. You would already have guessed which one I’d prefer,” said
Harry.

“But I can’t fly well enough for that. I’d never manage to get to Hogsmede on a broom,” said
Hermione anxiously.

“I didn’t mean you flying yourself. You can sit behind me. So how does it sound? Come on
Hermione, it’ll be real fun,” Harry egged her.

“Harry I’ve never traveled such a distance on a broom. I’d be scared stiff,” said Hermione.
Harry could see Hermione wanted to go. Otherwise she would have refused straightaway.

“You trust me, right,” said Harry. Hermione nodded. “Then get ready. I won’t let anything happen
to you,” he added, getting up to leave.

“Right,” said Hermione. She trusted Harry with her life. If Harry thought it was safe, then it
was safe. In a few minutes both of them were all ready to leave. Harry performed the
disillusionment charm on them. Hermione decided to sit in front of Harry rather than behind
him.

As they flew out of the window Hermione closed her eyes. The biting cold wind hit her face. It
was a nice sensation but her fear of flying prevented her from opening her eyes. Harry didn’t force
her into anything. He could smell the shampoo on her hair. He steadied the broom. He was
responsible for both of them. He couldn’t get distracted. He concentrated only on flying. However
he couldn’t ignore the fact that Hermione’s back was pressing against him.

“Wow, Hogsmede is magnificent during this time. I couldn’t have imagined such a transformation
when we came here a few days ago. Thanks for bringing me here Harry,” said Hermione happily.

“You speak as if we are on a date,” joked Harry.

“Well you asked me to come and I agreed. That makes it a sort of date. If that’s okay with you,”
replied Hermione.

“That’s fine. So I have to treat you to lunch,” said Harry.

“I didn’t mean it like that Harry. It’s just that we know each other so well. To any third
person here we would look like a couple,” said Hermione, defensively.

“I have no problem in treating you. You’ve done so much for me over the years. And as you know I
never care what others think. If they want to think of us as a couple then let them. Your happiness
is all that matters to me,” said Harry decisively.

“You’re so sweet Harry,” said Hermione hugging him. Harry hugged her back. He wished he could
stay like this forever.

They spent a peaceful afternoon at Hogsmede. Harry paid for a delicious lunch they had. Special
stalls of magical games had been setup for the festive season. Both of them played plenty of these
games. Harry insisted on paying for everything. There were some new sweets at Honeydukes. Both of
them bought plenty of those.

“Thank you so much Harry. That was by far the best date I’ve ever been on,” said Hermione, when
they had got back.

“Same with me. But both of us haven’t had the best relationships in the past,” replied Harry.
Both of them started laughing. There wasn’t much time left for the Christmas party. Hermione
excused herself to get ready. It didn’t take Harry very long to change into his suit. He patiently
waited for Hermione.

“Are we ready to go?” asked Hermione coming out of her bedroom. Harry looked at her. She had
dressed exactly the same way as in the Halloween ball.

“Hey, you look beautiful,” said Harry. Hermione blushed. His reaction had been so much different
from Ron’s. Ron just wanted her physical beauty. Harry was happy as long as she was with him. This
wasn’t even a ball so it wasn’t as if she and Harry were going together. Yet he was being so
nice.

The major attraction of the party was the splendid Indian food. There was Butter Chicken, Mutton
Stew and different kinds of breads. Hermione’s wish was fulfilled. The party was like muggle
Christmas parties but had a few magical touches. Music was playing in the background. With just
half an hour left for midnight Professor McGonagall got up to speak.

“Now we’ll have a dance till midnight,” she announced. Most of the crowd cheered. People got
into pairs. Harry and Hermione hadn’t expected this. They didn’t have partners.

“Harry would you like to dance? I mean both of us don’t have partners so we can make do with
each another,” asked Hermione.

“Sure! I didn’t know they had this planned or I would have asked you before,” replied Harry.
Hermione smiled shyly.

“You would have asked me?” she asked surprised.

“Isn’t that obvious? You are the only person I know well among all those who are here. We have
spent so much time together over the past few days. And I’ve enjoyed every bit of it,” said Harry
truthfully. He took her hand and walked to the dance floor.

Harry looked only at Hermione while he was dancing. He was totally oblivious to things around
him. Both of them danced without speaking. Their closeness to each other was killing Harry.
Hermione didn’t feel awkward like she had felt with Ron, when they had danced. That time it was Ron
who was constantly pulling her close to him. Here it wasn’t like that. Without knowing both of them
had come very close. It didn’t bother her at all.

As the clock struck twelve, the Great Hall erupted. Everyone wished each another. Christmas cake
was served to everybody. The party continued for a few more minutes before students and teachers
started to disperse.

“What a nice party!” Hermione remarked as they walked back to their quarters.

“It was great. People who went home, certainly missed something brilliant,” said Harry. He
couldn’t focus on anything at the moment. All he could think was how wonderful it was to dance with
Hermione. He contemplated if he should tell her now. This was a perfect time. It was Christmas,
they were alone, they had spent the whole day together, what else could make the day better? He
didn’t even notice that they were already in their common room.

“That was an awesome day. I never realized a day without studies could be so much fun,” said
Hermione quietly. “So I guess its goodnight then,” she added. By her voice Harry could make out
that she didn’t want the day to end. That was it. This was indeed the perfect moment to tell
her.

“Well we can sit here for a while if you want,” said Harry. Hermione seemed to be happy at the
proposition.

“Hermione you trust me, right,” said Harry. He wasn’t even close to the actual thing but his
hands were sweaty.

“I already gave you the answer this morning. What are you getting at?” Hermione asked
confused.

“You know I wouldn’t do anything to hurt you, right?” Harry asked.

“I know all that. But what’s the matter Harry? Have you done anything you shouldn’t have?” said
Hermione standing Hermione. She had never seen Harry this nervous. Not even when he was about to
face Voldemort.

“No, at least not yet. Okay, I’m going to tell you something Hermione. I have no idea if you’ll
like it or not. But you have to promise me one thing. Whatever your reaction may be you wouldn’t
let this come in the way of our friendship and you’ll let me complete what I’m about to say,” said
Harry. His knees were shaking.

“Harry nothing could come between us. But you are getting me very curious,” replied Hermione.
Harry took a deep breath. The moment of truth had arrived.

“Hermione as you know my past relationships were total failures. So before I entered seventh
year I had decided not to get into any relationship just like that. I lay out certain conditions in
my mind for any girl I date. These conditions were pretty strong. So most girls never even came
close to fulfilling these. But as the year passed I realized someone actually satisfied each of my
conditions and a lot more than that. I have been an idiot not to realize this sooner. The only girl
I can ever like is… you. Nobody else comes within a mile of you. I really like you Hermione. I
never imagined I could like anyone so much. I promise you it’s not a passing thing like Ginny,”
said Harry at length. He had finally said it. A huge load had lifted off his shoulder.

Hermione listened to every word he said. Even when he’d said only one girl satisfied ‘his
conditions’ she never imagined it would be her. His last few sentenced touched her deeply.

“Harry… Harry…I can’t…,” Hermione stopped midway. Her voice failed her. Harry’s face paled at
her words.

“It’s okay Hermione. I think I’ve made you uncomfortable. Please forgive me for this. I’ll see
you tomorrow morning,” said Harry. He got up to leave.

“Harry wait,” shouted Hermione. Harry stopped.

“What’s there to wait Hermione? Please don’t dramatize this. You said you can’t. That made
everything very clear. We’ll be as we were from tomorrow,” said Harry irritably.

“I can’t tell you how long I’ve waited for this. For you to tell me what you did. I don’t want
us to be as we were. I want much more than that,” Hermione said. Harry turned around. Hermione
rushed into his arms. They sat on the sofa.

“Just keep holding me like this for some time,” said Hermione.

“There’s nothing else I’d rather do. I’m so glad we’re together at last,” said Harry, playing
with her hair.

“Me too. I never imagined you’d like me. Harry let’s keep quiet for a while. I want to make sure
this is not a dream,” said Hermione. Both of them sat holding each other. There was no need for
words. Their actions showed everything.

When Harry looked at his watch it was four in the morning. They had fallen asleep in each others
arms. Hermione was still asleep. The long day must have tired her out. Carefully Harry lifted her
in his arms and took her to her bedroom. He laid her on her bed. He kissed her forehead before
leaving.

Despite it being Christmas both of them slept in. Hermione was the first to wake up. She noticed
that hers and Harry’s presents were lying on the common room table. She waited for Harry so that
they could open the gifts together. He walked in with sleepy eyes.

“Hi,” said Hermione shyly.

“Hi to you. Merry Christmas once again,” said Harry.

“Same to you. How did you get me to my room last night? I had fallen asleep,” asked
Hermione.

“Even I’d fallen asleep. I woke up at around four and carried you to your room. I didn’t want to
wake you up,” replied Harry. They started opening their presents. There were of course the usual
jumpers from Mrs. Weasley. Ron had sent both of them a pack of rare wizarding cards. They felt glad
that they’d got gifts for him. Finally it was time to open each other’s gifts. Hermione unwrapped
Harry’s gift first. Her jaws dropped.

“Harry… how did you know,” she asked. Immediately the price came to her mind. “Harry you
shouldn’t have. How am I going to accept this?”

“You deserve it Hermione. I know how much you wanted it. You look like a princess in it. I
really want you to have it,” replied Harry.

“Help me put it on,” said Hermione, pulling her hair up. Harry gently clasped the necklace
around her neck. She turned around. “Wow,” was all Harry could say. He proceeded to opening
Hermione’s gift. It was an album containing many photos of his parents, Sirius, Lupin and plenty of
their friends. Harry never knew such photos existed. It touched him deeply.

“Where did you find all this? It’s brilliant. I’ve never received a gift as valuable as this,”
asked Harry.

“I got them from McGonagall, Hagrid and Lupin. Some of the photos are from old newspapers. I
asked Dobby to get them for me. I knew you’d want something like this,” replied Hermione.

“Come here,” said Harry. Hermione moved closer to him. He hugged her tightly. “You are the best
thing that has ever happened to me. Right from the moment we met in the Hogwarts Express you are
the only one to have understood me completely. Every moment I’ve shared with you has been
wonderful. Even the small fights we’ve had. These moments helped me realize what great person you
truly are,” he said kissing her head.

“I’d be nowhere without you Harry. I came from a muggle family. You were my first friend and you
continued that way throughout,” replied Hermione. They had their breakfast and decided to go for a
walk.

They walked all around Hogwarts. They visited all the places which held special significance to
their friendship. These included the quidditch field, Hagrid’s hut, the outskirts of the Forbidden
Forest, near the Whomping Willow and many more. Finally they reached the lake, where they sat down
for a breather.

“How well we know this place now. When I was in first year I thought I’d never know the entire
castle,” said Hermione.

“That’s true but in all these years I’ve discovered something much better than the castle,” said
Harry.

“What can that be? Nothing can be better…,” she stopped seeing that Harry was looking directly
at her. She blushed.

“Don’t be such a sweet talker Harry. You don’t need to do that with me,” remarked Hermione.

“I wasn’t sweet talking. I meant every word of it. The castle is very important but it fades
when I compare it to you,” said Harry.

“Oh,” said Hermione. She knew Harry was telling the truth. She felt proud that somebody
considered her to be so important. Harry was still looking intensely at her. She couldn’t help
staring back. They were lost in one another’s gaze. Hermione felt herself leaning forward. At the
same time Harry’s face also moved forward. They kissed for the first time.

The kiss was very tender. It wasn’t very long or passionate but gentle. Hermione felt electric
currents down her spine. This was exactly how she imagined kissing would be. It was the first time
she returned somebody’s kiss. She felt herself melting under Harry’s influence. She couldn’t
believe something could be so wonderful. Unlike Ron Harry wasn’t overstepping his bounds. Both of
them knew how to act.

Harry had kissed two girls before but never like this. The moment their lips made contact he
felt warmth in his body. The kiss wasn’t anything more than a simple liplock but the warmth kept
growing. He could make out Hermione felt the same way. He kept staring at her even after they’d
pulled away.

“I’ve never felt anything like that,” said Hermione, breaking the silence.

“I don’t know how to describe it. It was… tremendous, awesome, lovely, amazing… maybe all of
those. You’re the best Hermione. I’m never leaving you,” Harry said.

“Please don’t. I wouldn’t be able to bear it if you did,” replied Hermione. They walked hand in
hand for Christmas lunch.

“Well well well! We have something interesting here. So when did it happen?” said Lupin as
Hermione and Harry walked into the Great Hall.

“Last night,” replied Harry shortly.

“Congratulations both of you. All the teachers knew you two would end up together. So did
Sirius. He told me one day when we were alone,” said Lupin. Harry was amazed. How had it taken him
so long to realize his feelings? Even others had known it before him. He noticed people were
glancing at him and Hermione throughout lunch. The word had spread that the famous Harry Potter was
going out with his best friend. For the first time he didn’t feel awkward with all the attention.
Hermione was someone he was proud to have unlike many other things which drew attention to him.

After lunch they spent a quiet afternoon in their common room. They played the wizarding cards
which Ron had sent them. A card slipped from Hermione’s had and fell to the floor. As she bent down
to pick it something caught her sight. There was something engraved on the right side of the
sofa.

“Harry look at this,” she said. Harry stared at the engraved text. He couldn’t believe it. It
read ‘You mean the world to me Lily, Love James Potter’. The next line was ‘You gave me all I could
have asked for James; I love you, Lily Evens’.

“Your parents Harry! They were in this very room. You share something common with them,” said
Hermione gently. Harry couldn’t speak. His eyes were moist. This was the first time he’d seen his
parents’ handwriting. He was going through the same phase with Hermione as they had been through.
Hermione understood his silence and held him in her arms.

“It’s okay Harry. Your parents would be proud of you,” she said. Harry wasn’t crying but tears
were present in his eyes.

“These are tears of happiness Hermione. I’ve finally found something about my parents which not
many others know. I don’t know about anything else but my parents would definitely be proud of one
thing. That I got someone like you into my life,” said Harry.

“I’ll always be there for you Harry. All my life,” said Hermione, who too was struggling to keep
her voice straight.

Harry had planned a private dinner for them in the common room. He asked Hermione to wait in her
bedroom while he made arrangements. When Hermione came out she stared in astonishment. There was a
big table with a white table cloth. A large candle was in the middle of the table. The room was
dark except the candlelight. There was plenty of food on the table including pork chops, smoked
ham, chicken breasts, Russian salad, sweet corns and garlic bread.

“Wow Harry! This is so romantic. You have such a brilliant taste,” said Hermione. Harry held her
chair out for her. She sat down smiling. Harry poured some pumpkin juice for both of them.

“I glad you like it. I want our first day together to be special. Something we’ll remember for
the rest of our lives, wherever we may be,” said Harry.

“It’s already been so great. You asking after midnight, sleeping on the sofa in your arms, your
gift, our first kiss near the lake, discovering your parents’ engravings and now this. On top of
all this it’s Christmas. What could be better than this?” she asked happily.

“As long as we are together nothing could be better,” replied Harry. They ate in silence. Harry
had one more surprise in his kitty. He took out a box tied with a ribbon. He handed it to Hermione.
She opened it to see a Christmas cake shaped like a heart. The words ‘Dear Hermione, Thank you… for
being you, Love Harry’ written with icing shone on top.

“Harry what did I do to deserve all this? You have gone overboard,” said Hermione still not
believing all this was true.

“If I answer that question fully we won’t get any sleep in the night. So as I wrote in the cake,
you deserve this for being you,” replied Harry. He cut a slice and held it in front of Hermione’s
mouth. She took a small bite before holding the same slice in front of Harry.

It was quite late but both Harry and Hermione didn’t want the day to end. They kept
chatting.

“Hermione when I told you how I felt, you said you had waited for me to say that for a long
time. Did you too feel like that? If yes, since when and why didn’t you tell me?” asked Harry.

“Yes Harry I’ve felt like that for a long time but I’ll elaborate later. Maybe tomorrow. I’m
getting really sleepy now. Can we call it a night?” she said.

“Yes we can. You are welcome to tell me whenever you want. Let’s go to bed. But just wait a
minute. I want to tell you that this has been the best day of my life. And you are solely
responsible for it,” Harry said sincerely.

“Ditto for me. I’ve never had a better day. You made my day,” said Harry. She walked up to him
and they shared their second kiss. It was slightly longer than the first but still very tender.

Hermione lay in her bed. Within a day her life had taken a dramatic turn for the better. Twenty
four hours ago she was still recovering from the Ron episode but during the day she hadn’t thought
about it even once. Now it would be easier for her to forgive Ron. With Harry she felt ‘at home’.
She should never have hurried into things with Ron. Things were looking up now and she wouldn’t let
fall again.

Harry’s thoughts were much the same. He had told Hermione about his feelings. She felt the same
way. Things couldn’t be better. They had spent an outstanding first day together. If he had any
doubts they had cleared. Hermione was the girl for him. She made him feel like nobody else could.
He fell into a peaceful sleep.



10. Questions Answered
----------------------

**A/N: Thanks for the great response to chapter nine. The last ten reviews are still
unanswered. I’ll answer them as soon a possible. This chapter is one long conversation between
Harry and Hermione. It answers all the questions from the previous chapters, HBP and the earlier
books. Those looking for fast stories may find this boring. But it is very important for the
storyline. Harry/Hermione fans will like this. Some of it is repetitive but I wanted to include
everything in the conversation. Please review!!!**

**Now for some news on my side. There will be no updates till the 20th of January, 2006. I have
my examinations coming up and need to concentrate on my studies. But this story is far from over.
I’ve already made notes for the next two chapters. So stay tuned for more. A very Happy New Year to
everyone. Hope the coming year brings better news for Harry/Hermione shippers.**

Chapter Ten: Questions Answered

After breakfast on Boxing Day, Harry and Hermione decided to have the talk about the development
of their feelings towards each other. They lit a fire in their common room since it was quite
chilly.

“So where do we start? I think you should start Harry because my story is very very long. You’ll
get bored hearing it,” said Hermione.

“I can never be bored when I’m with you. Getting to look at you is entertaining enough,” said
Harry with a sly smile.

“You’re a big flirt Harry! Now without wasting much time can you start?” said Hermione.

“Fine, I’ll start. You remember how our friendship was weakening during sixth year. I felt that
both of us were drifting apart. At that time I didn’t think much about it. I was too busy thinking
about the Horcruxes. When you sent me the letter about your moving away, I wasn’t affected
initially. I thought you had stopped caring about all of us. I decided not to dwell much on the
matter,” he paused seeing that Hermione wanted to speak.

“But Harry how could you think I didn’t care about you? I know we drifted apart last year but
the reason for that is totally different. I cared for you and everyone else wholeheartedly. I’ll
tell you about it after sometime,” said Hermione indignantly.

“You didn’t let me finish. The moment I lay on my bed all I could think about was you. Your help
before the Triwizard Tournament floated through my mind. That is when I realized how important you
are to me. So I called you but you were very firm about your decision to leave. Again your memories
enveloped my mind, particularly the incidents at the Ministry of Magic. When I saw you being hit by
the curse I got lost. Had it been any of the others I would have fought back with vengeance. But
seeing you like that… I lost my mind. When I finally went to sleep, you know what happened after
that,” said Harry.

“Why did you tell me all this? You couldn’t have felt anything for me at that time. Otherwise
you wouldn’t have played the matchmaker for me and Ron,” said Hermione.

“You say that I didn’t like you at that time. That is not true. Within my heart I liked just one
person, you. My brain however was foolish enough not to decipher my heart. This is just one
example. Despite it being the low point of our friendship, I couldn’t forget you. Even if somebody
had given me a slight hint, I would have realized it,” said Harry, truthfully.

“If you didn’t realize it at that time then when did you? It’s barely been six months since
then,” said Hermione. She was deeply into Harry’s story.

“It was at the Halloween Ball. Luna asked me a simple question – to describe the qualities of
the ideal girl for me. As I have told you, I had made a few conditions in my mind for any girl I
date. The first condition was she had to be a very good friend. Without friendship nothing can even
start. Secondly my liking should not be an infatuation or a crush. Meaning looks shouldn’t be an
issue. Then there were smaller things like mutual trust and a good heart. Finally both of us should
know each other better than ourselves. So as you heard, these were quite strong conditions. I
didn’t expect anyone to fulfill all of these within the next decade. Luna went off to the toilet
and my eyes fell on you and Ron dancing. That was the moment. I realized that only one girl could
fulfill all my conditions. I had been a fool not to see it before,” said Harry.

“Remind me to thank Luna once she gets back. What happened after that? It couldn’t have been
easy for you to see me and Ron going out,” said Hermione.

“I considered Ron as my brother and you seemed to be happy with him. So I had no choice in the
matter. However there was one way to get what I wanted. When I was looking for my socks that night
I found that the bottle of Felix Felices Slughorn had given me still had some contents in it. But I
resisted that temptation. I wanted us to share something pure. Not something induced by potions,”
said Harry.

“I don’t know what to say Harry. I always trusted your honesty but I never knew you were so
noble,” said Hermione. She was deeply touched by Harry’s latest revelation. Her curiosity grew even
more. “Then why didn’t you tell me right after I broke up with Ron?” she asked.

“I wanted you to recover from the shock. Even if you say you didn’t like Ron, you were still
shaken by the whole incident. I didn’t want some sort of a backlash to start our relationship. When
I felt you had gotten over all that I told you,” said Harry.

“One last question. What were you doing when I caught you unaware while studying for the pre
NEWTs?” asked Hermione.

“I was looking at you. The sight of you deep in your work mesmerized me. That was the natural
you. The Hermione I’ve always known. Also on Christmas Eve morning before I woke you up, a similar
thing happened. The simple sight of you sleeping hypnotized me. That is when I finally decided to
tell you everything. After the dance at the party I felt the perfect moment had arrived,” said
Hermione.

“Wow! You are absolutely amazing Harry. I never knew you were such a gentleman. I’ll try my
level best to live up to your expectations and make our relationship a successful one,” said
Hermione kissing him on the cheek.

“Enough of talking from my side. It’s your turn now,” said Harry. He was happy that he had told
Hermione everything. The first step to a successful relationship was being truthful. Hermione
sighed.

“This is a going to be a long one. I’m not sure how much of it you will like. Please don’t think
badly of me because of what I say. I wasn’t mature enough and couldn’t think properly,” said
Hermione.

“Hermione whatever has happened in the past is behind us. We’ve started fresh. Knowing the truth
will help us understand each other much better. Don’t be afraid. There is no way I’ll think badly
of you. It has taken me long enough to discover you and I don’t want to lose you,” Harry reassured
her, putting his hands on her shoulder.

“Thanks for that Harry. For me it started during the end of third year but I was too young to
understand any of it. When you and I were saving Sirius with the help of the time turner I knew
there was something in you which nobody else had. You had spoken to Sirius for barely half an hour
but you figured out he was innocent. I don’t think it was purely instinct. I deeply admired you for
this. That was the reason why I took such a risk with the time turner. I knew saving Sirius was
important for you. Probably even Professor Dumbledore knew that. I wouldn’t have taken such a risk
with anyone else. This was the first time I thought of more than friendship with you,” said
Hermione.

“You were only fourteen at that time. How could you be sure of your feelings at that time?”
asked Harry.

“To start with I wasn’t sure. But once we got back from Hogwarts, all I could think about was
you. Then the drama with the Goblet of Fire happened. The moment you told me you didn’t put your
name in the Goblet I believed you. I knew that you wouldn’t lie to me. I also knew how much you
were missing Ron’s company. I tried my best to get the two of you together. You would remember that
I was crying when you finally made peace after the first task. Partly it was happiness that you’d
got back your best mate. But partly I was sad that you wouldn’t need me after that. Since Ron was
back with you you’d give me less time than you’d been giving me. I couldn’t bare that thought,”
Hermione said.

“But how could you think that? There was never a distinction between you and Ron as far as my
friendship was concerned. You were both equally dear to me. If anything I valued your friendship
more since Ron was also concerned about me being Harry Potter. You always saw me as Harry. Just
Harry,” replied Harry.

“As I’ve told you I wasn’t wise enough to understand all this. Anyway by the end of the year my
feelings for you changed into liking. I’d hoped you’d ask me to the Yule Ball but that never
happened. At King Cross’ station I kissed you for the first time. Your reaction confused me.
Neither did you object nor did you show happiness. Perhaps you were too busy thinking about Cedric
and Voldemort,” said Hermione.

“Yes that’s absolutely true. However the memory of you kissing me for the first time is one of
my fondest. Now that I think about it, I feel that I’d started liking you around that time.
Otherwise one small kiss wouldn’t have affected me so much. So after this how did your liking for
me change into liking for Ron?” Harry asked.

“It never happened Harry. I’ll come to that part later. I entered fifth year full of hope. I
even thought of telling you but couldn’t gather the courage. If you turned me down I wouldn’t have
been able to survive. Also I may have lost your friendship. Thank goodness I didn’t. Within weeks
of school restarting I noticed your crush on Cho. I’ll admit it Harry, I was very jealous. Here was
this girl whom you hardly knew and she had taken you away from me. You kept asking me how to deal
with her. I instructed you to the best of my knowledge but inside it was killing me. I was very
proud when you stood up for me during the Marietta Edgecombe controversy. Finally the two of you
broke up. You didn’t seem particularly disappointed. I was rejoicing,” said Hermione, hoping this
wouldn’t anger Harry.

“If you’d only told me Hermione, I would have realized it sooner. By that time I subconsciously
liked you, that is more than a friend. That is the reason I couldn’t think of what to do when you
were hit by the curse at the Ministry. It was like part of me had been hit. Don’t think I’ll be
angry with you. All this is really fascinating to hear,” said Harry, taking a sip of water.

“Towards the end of fifth year I saw a few signs of your liking me back. But it was just wishful
thinking on my part. Since you’d broken up with Cho, I was a bit too happy. We entered sixth year
and you hadn’t got together with anybody. My hopes were really increasing. One night I decided to
finally tell you about my feelings. However, next day you showed definite signs of liking Ginny. I
had had enough. The only way I could get over you was by weakening the bond of our friendship. That
is why we drifted apart last year. It was all my doing and I’m ashamed of it. I should have been
with you when you went with Voldemort,” said Hermione tensely.

“I don’t blame you for it. But you still haven’t answered my question. How did you start liking
Ron,” asked Harry.

“Since you and I drifted apart Ron was my closest friend at that time. Like you even I’d kept a
condition for any person I date. Just one condition - friendship. It was your main condition too. I
felt friendship covered all the other conditions. So basically I was down to the two of you. And I
couldn’t have you. That just left Ron. I thought getting involved with Ron would help me get over
you. He too showed interest in me. By the end of sixth year the two of us had got quite close.
Closer than ever before. But once I went back home I could think about only you,” said
Hermione.

“I think this last bit played a part in your decision to leave with your ‘parents’. The Hermione
I know wouldn’t just leave everything here and go away,” interrupted Harry.

“You know me too well Harry. Yes, it did play a rather big part. I love my parents very much.
But only for their anxiety I wouldn’t abandon everything here. When Peter told me about moving
away, I felt this would be the perfect opportunity to get over my feelings for you. Being your
friend without being your girlfriend was really tough on me. I thought Ron would solve my problems
but he didn’t. So I decided to leave. You know what happened after that. The time we were alone at
my house was very hard on me emotionally. My parents were fighting for their lives. You were there
for me. Without you I couldn’t have gone on with life. You made me feel like somebody. My liking
for you kept growing but I didn’t get any reaction at all. So I was losing hope. Your breakup with
Ginny got me interested once again,” said Hermione.

“Then why did you say you liked Ron when I asked you? What all you’ve said so far makes perfect
sense but how could you say you liked Ron after this?” asked Harry.

“During our stay at The Burrow Ron and I again got close. While you were breaking up with Ginny,
he almost kissed me. If you hadn’t come in at the time you did, he would definitely have kissed me.
We went to Bill’s wedding together and I liked it. Ron was his usual self at that time. Still you
were in my mind. I thought I’d wait for a few more days to see if you fancied me back,” said
Hermione.

“That’s all right. You probably didn’t get the reaction you were looking for when we got back to
your place. What happened then?” asked Harry intrigued.

“No I didn’t get any reaction from you. I was very frustrated. I tried to think about Ron to
keep your thoughts away. Then the time came when you confronted me about my feelings for Ron. By
your voice I understood you wanted us to get together. That tore me into two. I played my last card
at that time. I told you I liked Ron to check if you would be jealous or not. There was no sign of
it. On the contrary you were planning to set us up. That night I couldn’t sleep a wink. For the
first half of the night I cried and cried. I felt as if I’d lost you forever. At about five in the
morning I decided enough is enough. I had to move on. Since I had blind faith in you I believed
everything you said about Ron’s feelings. I decided to treat you as a normal friend and get
together with Ron. That was final. Things worked according to my plans. Ron and I hooked up at
Diagon Alley,” said Hermione.

“Hermione, before you started to tell me this you’d said I may think badly of you. You’ve told
me everything sincerely. I respect you immensely for it. But why did you think I’ll think badly of
you?” asked Harry.

“I haven’t finished Harry. The ‘bad’ part is yet to come. I’m normally very firm about my
decisions. I never go against what I decide. But this was something out of my control. Despite
being with Ron, my feelings for you remained. Meanwhile I also realized that Ron and I weren’t
working. Instead of talking it out or ending it I evaded the problem indefinitely. If I broke up
with Ron, it would have been difficult for me to fight my feeling for you. So I kept going on.
Finally I found the reaction I was looking for in you. At the Halloween Ball when we danced there
was something in your touch which had never been there before. As you said, it was the first time
you looked at me as more than a friend. After that my breakup with Ron was only a matter of time. I
felt really guilty. I had used Ron while I liked you. I had cheated on him. When we discovered the
truth about Ron, it was a big relief for me. I had the perfect excuse for a breakup and my guilt
was erased. But now it has returned. Ron was caught cheating, which led to total isolation for him.
I am as much of a cheater as him. However since I wasn’t caught, I got away,” said Hermione choking
slightly on the last words. Harry comforted her by pulling her to him.

“You didn’t treat Ron the way you should have. But that is no excuse for Ron’s actions. The long
and short of it, you two weren’t meant for one another. So I’m the biggest culprit. I got the two
of you together. Anyway, no point in wasting time on the past. I think we should be nice to Ron
once he gets back,” said Harry.

“Thanks Harry. Nobody has ever treated me like this. It was very difficult for me. When you’re
going out with one person but actually love another, it’s really tough. We’ll be nice to Ron for
sure. I think we should tell him the truth,” said Hermione. Harry was looking at her with big eyes.
She was confused.

“What did you just say… about it being tough for you?” asked Harry.

“I said that when you are going out with one person but actually lo…,” she stopped. “Nothing
important, I’ve forgotten it now,” she added hastily.

“Hermione I know you well enough to catch your lies. Don’t lie to me. Tell me what you were
saying. As I’ve said before you can tell me anything you want. There is no need for you to hide
anything. I’ll never desert you,” said Harry encouragingly. He knew perfectly well what Hermione
had said but wanted to hear it from her.

“I said it is really tough when you are going out with one person but actually love another
person,” said Hermione cautiously. She had told everything to Harry. So there was no point in
hiding this.

“You love me?” Harry asked softly.

“Yes, I love you,” replied Hermione. She felt great. After all these years she had said it to
him.

“I love you too. With all my heart,” said Harry. Both of them leaned forward for a long kiss.
Their lips were devouring each other. They kept kissing until oxygen became an issue. They pulled
away breathless.

“That is the first time someone has said that to me. I was too young to hear it when my parents
said it to me,” said Harry looking directly at Hermione.

“Oh Harry! I love you! I love you! I love you! You are going to hear it plenty of times from
now. Hope you are ready for it,” said Hermione, hugging him close to her.

“I think I can handle that. It’s hard to imagine we’ve been together less than two days. It
seems like eternity. I love you so much Hermione,” said Harry. Both of them sat holding each other.
At last they had found what had always eluded them for so long.

**** ****

The Sorting Hat and The Magical Quill sat in a dark corner in the Headmistress’ office. The
quill seemed to be jumping with excitement.

“No need to be so happy. I have to make almost fifty decisions every year as compared to your
one. The probability of me being wrong is much higher,” said the hat.

“Don’t be jealous. All you have to do is to read a student’s mind to select his house. I just
get to look at the Head Boy and the Head Girl and connect them by a password. My job is a lot more
difficult than yours,” the quill countered.

“What password did you choose? Looks like you’ve been spot on,” said the hat.

“I’ve never been as close as this before. Philia, meaning love in Greek. More precisely, love
between friends. In what better way can one describe Harry and Hermione?” the quill said
proudly.

“That’s brilliant. You’ve done well. How did you know it?” asked the hat.

“I saw it their eyes. Since I’m not allowed to go into the mind, I read the expressions very
carefully. One look at the eyes, you know they are meant for one another. To be frank, it was one
of my easier decisions,” replied the quill.

“They are most certainly in love with each other,” the hat said.



11. Second Chance
-----------------

**A/N: Hello to everyone again. Firstly a belated Happy New Year to everybody. I’m back after
my examinations. I was really out of practice so this chapter won’t be very good. It really took a
big effort to get back to writing. I never knew it would be so difficult. For the first couple of
days I could barely write. Ron’s fans will like this chapter. As promised before his positive side
comes out here. Thank you to all the reviewers of the previous chapter. Any question you have can
be asked in the review. Please review this chapter as I need to know how well I’m doing after a
long layoff. Happy** **Reading****!!**

Chapter Eleven: Second Chance

Ron had a quiet Christmas but liked it all the same. His mother’s cooking always made his stays
at home worthwhile. Since his father’s promotion in the ministry their financial situation had
improved. Fred and George’s profits from the joke shop also helped. His time at home was better
than Hogwarts in many ways. He wasn’t as lonely as he was at Hogwarts. Ginny had not mentioned
anything about his misdeeds to anyone. So the other members of the family treated him normally, not
noticing the cold attitude of Ginny. Fred and George were their usual goofy selves. However he
missed the company of Luna. She had been his only bright spot over the past month. She had sent him
a wonderful gift for Christmas. It was a Canon’s quidditch jersey which he had wanted for a long
time. He was also happy to receive Harry’s sweets and Hermione’s quill set. At least they were
showing signs of regaining normality. Today was New Year’s Eve. Ron had just woken up when he saw
Pigwidgeon with a letter attached to his leg. It was from Luna.

*Dear Ron,*

*I hope you are enjoying the holidays. I wanted to thank you for the silver chain you sent me
for Christmas. I wear it all the time and dad says it looks wonderful on me. It’s the first time
someone has given me something as nice as this.*

*You know, I never realized that our houses are very close. It’s a shame you, me and Ginny
never got to meet in the holidays during the past six years. I was wondering if you want that is,
we could meet sometime. You would have heard about the muggle park called Anther’s Park. It’s about
fifteen minutes from your place. We could meet there. Only if you want. I’ll understand if you want
to spend time with your family. Please send me a reply to finalize things.*

*With warm regards,*

*Luna.*

Ron reread the letter again and again. He had been a fool not to have known this. The Lovegoods,
about whom his dad always spoke were none other than Luna and her family. The prospects of meeting
Luna alone, away from everybody scared him but he couldn’t bear to hurt her sentiments. After all,
she had done so much for him. So he sent back a positive reply.

*Dear Luna,*

*It’s certainly a good idea to meet. I’m getting bored being with the same people all the
time. To make matters worse Ginny isn’t talking to me. On the positive side everyone else in the
family is treating me normally. Let’s meet tomorrow after lunch, say at about two thirty.*

*Thanks for the jersey. I have always wanted this. My association with the Canons is… I
wouldn’t start on that. Anyway we’ll talk more tomorrow.*

*Hope you are well.*

*Ron.*

Next afternoon when Ron got to Anther’s Park, Luna was already there. She smiled at him.

“Hi Luna, I hope I haven’t kept you waiting for long,” said Ron, briefly hugging her.

“Not at all, I’ve just got here. Let’s sit down,” replied Luna. Both of them sat down on a
bench. This park seemed to be a paradise for muggle couples. There were plenty of couples snogging
away, oblivious to what was going on around them. However neither of them felt uncomfortable
because of this.

“So how are things with you?” asked Ron.

“I’ve been fine. Dad and I have enjoyed being together. It’s the first time we’ve been able to
enjoy Christmas. The credit for that goes to Harry, for killing V-Voldemort. Speaking of Harry, any
progress on your scene with him and Hermione?” said Luna.

“Well both of them sent me gifts for Christmas. So did I. I guess that’s a start,” replied
Ron.

“Yes that’s definitely a start. I’m sure things will be okay for you once you get back to
Hogwarts. Remember I’m with you,” said Luna comfortingly. Ron noticed she was gently stroking the
chain he had given her. One odd thing about her was that she was still wearing her butterbear cork
necklace.

“Thanks Luna for your kindness. If you don’t mind could I ask what the significance of that
butterbear cork necklace is? I mean… it must be very important for you since you always wear it,”
asked Ron, trying not to sound rude. He was just curious.

“You are the first person who has taken a normal view of this. I must look mad wearing this but
yes; it is of great importance to me. When I was young, I saw some pictures of beautiful women
wearing necklaces. I wanted one for myself. At that time my family wasn’t financially well off. So
my mother made this for me. I was elated. When my mother passed away, I wanted something to
remember her by, to always be with me. It’s difficult to carry photographs. So I chose this. People
are welcome to think what they want of me but I’m going to wear this forever,” she said with a
touch of emotion. Ron gently touched the back of her palm.

“I never knew this Luna. I feel like killing every soul that has ever teased you about this.
Don’t worry anymore. I’ll personally make sure nobody teases you about this anymore. If they do,
they’ll have to answer me,” said Ron. Luna smiled in appreciation.

“I don’t blame anyone for teasing me. To an outsider it would look like craziness. You are the
first person to whom I’ve told this,” said Luna. They talked for a couple of hours before
separating. They had decided to meet again after two days.

On the decided day and time Ron was waiting for Luna in the park. It was ten minutes late but
Ron waited patiently. Ten turned to fifteen and then twenty. In normal circumstances Ron would have
got angry and walked away. But in this case he felt worried. He started walking towards Luna’s
house. Though he didn’t know the address he had a brief idea where it would be.

**** **** ****

To make sure of not being late Luna started from her house on time. She had been looking forward
to meet Ron. Things were going very well between them. It looked that finally Ron was seeing her
the way she wanted. He seemed to understand her better than anyone else. She was lost in these
thoughts. Just as she had entered the muggle area things started happening. It was an empty road.
Three tall boys were walking towards her. They looked about twenty.

“Hey there’s a cute one,” said one of the boys, pointing towards Luna. Luna looked stricken.
Obviously these guys had evil intentions. There was nobody around to help her. One of the guys
grabbed her arm.

“Don’t touch me! What do you want?” shouted Luna hoping that somebody would hear her. Two of the
boys merely laughed but the third looked slightly concerned.

“Don’t be so reckless you idiots. Gag her first. Anyone can hear her screams. And don’t stand in
the middle of the road. Move into that plot. It is uninhabited. The walls will act as good cover,”
he said, gagging Luna with his hanky. Luna was now in tears. There was no way out of this. The guys
dragged her into the empty plot. She couldn’t shout or resist. She tried to wriggle but was slapped
hard across the face. She wished she was carrying her wand. Her top was torn from the entire
scuffle. She was prepared for the worst when she saw the guy in front of her collapse to the
floor.

He had been boxed on the ear by Ron. Luna watched in disbelieve. Ron’s face was red with anger.
The two other guys immediately tackled Ron to the floor. Luna watched in horror as punches and
kicks were exchanged. Ron was fighting against two guys older than him but was doing remarkably
well. Luna took the hanky from her mouth and tried to help go and help Ron.

“Luna you stay out of this!” Ron shouted. His nose was bleeding but he wouldn’t stop fighting.
Unfortunately the third guy had just got up and joined the fight. Despite his best efforts Ron
couldn’t manage three of them together. His face was repeatedly being punched. He was fighting a
losing battle. One of the guys picked up a wooden stick and started hitting Ron’s back with it. Ron
could barely keep his eyes open. With one last effort he freed himself. This was an emergency
situation. There was just one way out of this. He took out his wand.

“Expelliarmus!” he shouted. One guy was thrown back and hit the wall. The other two seemed
stunned. Without even looking at Ron they darted. The third one followed. Ron sat down
exhausted.

“Oh Ron! Are you alright?” asked Luna rushing to him. Her sweater had disappeared and her shirt
was completely torn. But she didn’t care.

“I’ll be alright. We need to get medical attention. How far is your house from here?” said
Ron.

“Ten minutes from here. But it’ll help if you are in a condition to do side on apparation. I
can’t possibly walk like this,” said Luna, trying to cover herself with her arms.

“I don’t know side on apparation. I could apparate to your place and get your dad but I don’t
want to leave you alone. You wear my sweater, I’ll manage with the shirt,” replied Ron, handing his
sweater to Luna. She took it gratefully. They started to walk. Ron was limping slightly due to his
injuries. Suddenly Luna cried out.

“Oh no! My necklace is gone!” she wailed. Ron reached for his pocket.

“Here, a present for you. This is what led me to you. I saw it outside the empty plot and knew
you would be inside. The string has snapped but I’m sure we can fix that,” said Ron, handing the
necklace to Luna. She kissed his cheek.

“Thank you Ron, for everything you did. I can’t imagine what would have happened to me if you
hadn’t arrived,” said Luna.

When they arrived at Luna’s house, Arnold Lovegood was busy in his work. He looked up on hearing
the door open. He stared in shock at the sight he saw.

“Nothing to worry dad. We are both alright but Ron needs some medical attention. I’ll tell you
everything later. Please arrange for a mediwizard first,” said Luna urgently.

“Miss Marlow next door works at St. Mungos as a nurse. I’m sure she’ll be able to help out,”
said Arnold before apparating. He returned in a couple of minutes with Miss Marlow. As she attended
to Ron’s injuries Arnold apparated to the Burrow to inform Ron’s parents. Miss Marlow also checked
Luna for any injuries but her problem was mental rather than physical. Arnold returned with Molly,
Arthur and Ginny. Molly was extremely relieved to see Ron was okay. All of them sat down as Ron and
Luna told their stories. Arnold was horrified.

“Dad, I used magic in muggle presence. I hope I won’t get into trouble for that. It was an
emergency. I didn’t have a choice,” said Ron in the end.

“I’ll make sure you don’t. I don’t have enough words to thank you Ronald. Luna is all I have
after Natalie passed away. You saved her. I’ll be indebted to you all my life,” said Arnold in a
choked voice.

“That’s okay Mr. Lovegood. It was a good thing I found Luna in time. Otherwise things could have
been bad,” replied Ron, embarrassed.

“That was really brave of you Ron. You won’t get into any trouble. We have Luna as witness, if
the ministry creates any problems,” said Arthur, patting Ron on the back. Arnold made a mental note
of publishing this whole episode in the Quibbler.

“It’s getting late. We should make a move,” said Molly, getting up. Arthur, Ginny and Ron
followed. Arnold interrupted them.

“If you don’t mind, can I have a word with Ron privately?” he asked, looking towards Molly and
Arthur. They nodded. Ron and Arnold moved to one corner of the room.

“Ron I know you’ve done a lot but I would like to ask you for one more favor. This has been a
really traumatic experience for Luna. I feel uncomfortable letting her out of the house alone. She
is really fond of you. Could you come sometimes and spend time with her? You can have lunch with us
if you want,” said Arnold.

“I’ll be glad to come. Thank you for the invitation. I’ll owl her and confirm the exact dates,”
replied Ron, with a smile.

**** **** ****

Next morning when Ron was getting ready for breakfast somebody knocked on his door.

“Come in,” said Ron. The door opened and Ginny walked in looking slightly uncomfortable.

“Er… Hi,” said Ron awkwardly. He didn’t know what to say to Ginny.

“Hi! Are your cuts and bruises better?” asked Ginny, quietly.

“Yes, they’re much better. Miss Marlow did a wonderful job on them,” replied Ron.

“Ron, I wanted to apologize for my behavior over the past month. I thought what you did was
beyond repair. However after your heroics yesterday you’ve proved that there is still a lot of good
in you,” said Ginny.

“That’s okay Ginny. What I did was horrible. I know I can’t change what has already happened.
The best I can do is to start fresh. Yesterday it made my blood boil to see those three guys
forcing themselves on Luna. I’m glad I was about to help,” replied Ron. Ginny rushed forward and
hugged him.

“I’m so happy that we are back on talking terms. It felt odd not talking to you,” she said.

“Same with me and thanks for not spilling the beans. That would have made life hell for me,”
said Ron finally. Both of them started to walk down for breakfast.

“Do you like Luna?” asked Ginny suddenly.

“After what I did with the others, I have no right to answer that question,” replied Ron,
firmly. His tone suggested that he was not going any further with this discussion. Ginny didn’t
question him anymore but made a mental note.

Ginny wasn’t the first person to have raised this question. Ron had himself thought about this a
couple of times but didn’t dare to think too much. He had learnt from his past experience. Luna was
probably the best thing that had happened to him during the last month and he wasn’t willing to
spoil it. Over the last few days of the holidays he visited her every alternate day. They spent
their time talking, sometimes playing wizarding chess or Exploding Snap, going for walks within the
wizard’s area and of course eating. With every passing minute he felt as if he liked Luna more and
more. But he kept this to himself. He needed somebody to talk to. Any other time the person would
have been Harry. He hoped that after getting back to Hogwarts Harry would listen to him.

**** **** ****

“Mmmm… this feels so good,” moaned Hermione as Harry kissed her neck. They were in the middle of
a snog session which was gaining intensity with every second. However Hermione didn’t feel a trace
of awkwardness like she had felt with Ron. She guessed that Harry was the person she was meant to
be with. Harry pulled away reluctantly.

“We should stop now or else we may reach the point of no return,” he said. Hermione nodded in
agreement. They decided to get some fresh air. Today was the last day of the holidays. The students
would be coming back later in the evening.

“Harry! Hermione!” called a voice when they were heading down the stairs. It was Remus Lupin. “I
thought you’d like to see this,” he said handing them a magazine.

“Professor, since when do you read trashy magazines like the Quibbler?” asked Hermione
incredulously.

“I normally don’t read it though it is not as bad as you make it out to be. I saw this copy at
Diagon Alley and bought it especially for you. You might be interested in its contents,” Remus
replied.

“I’m sorry Professor,” said Hermione, ashamed of having reacted that way.

“That’s okay,” said Lupin before getting into his office. Harry opened the magazine and was
greeted by the smiling face of Ron. Both of them started to read the article that followed.

*COURAGEOUS TEENAGER SAVES THE DAY*

*By Matilda Stevens*

*On the fourth of January, seventeen year old Ronald Weasley, student of* *Hogwarts*
*School* *of Witchcraft and Wizardry showed immense bravery to rescue his friend Luna
Lovegood from three muggle youths, who were forcing themselves upon her. Ron and Luna had planed a
meeting at Anther’s Park. However Luna did not show up in time, so Ron got worried.*

*While Luna was on her way to the park, the three youths dragged her into an empty plot. There
was nobody around to save her. They clearly had evil intentions. Luna was slapped a couple of times
and the rough handling tore her top completely. Two boys had a vice like grip on her while the
third one was planning his move.*

*“It was horrifying. I was scared but couldn’t scream. I didn’t know what to do. It was a
helpless situation,” says Luna. Meanwhile Ron, who had set out to find Luna, found her necklace
outside the plot. He rushed inside and boxed one of the guys ears (the one who was not holding
Luna). The other two guys immediately attacked Ron. A huge fight took place. Ron was just about
managing to hold off two the two guys who were older than him. Unluckily for him the third guy
recovered and the three of them together were able to overpower Ron. Ron was badly beaten up. Not
having any option left, Ron decided to use magic. One disarming spell was all it took to scare the
youths away.*

*“I didn’t want to use magic but it was an emergency. I was managing well before the third guy
entered the fight. Luna wanted to help but I stopped her. Girls should not get involved in physical
fights as long as possible. I’m glad I was able to help Luna,” said Ron, after the rescue. His
injuries were nothing serious and were mended by Miss Marlow, who is a neighbor of the
Lovegoods.*

*“I’m very grateful of Ron for saving Luna. She’s all I have,” said an emotional*
*Arnold* *Lovegood, Luna’s father and the editor of Quibbler. Ron’s parents were very proud
of their son.*

*“This shows what a nice person my son is. Bravery apart it required a heart like his to save
somebody of such humiliation. We’ve traced the three youths and performed memory charms so that
they don’t remember the magic they saw,” says Arthur Weasley, Ron’s father who works at the
ministry.*

Harry and Hermione were amazed. To think Ron could be like this was unthinkable. They couldn’t
say anything for a long time.

“I can’t believe this is the same Ron who cheated three girls at once,” said Harry finally.

“I know. We should take him back as a part of our trio. He’s suffered enough and now he’s
rectified his mistakes. So let’s give him a chance,” replied Hermione.

“Most Definitely! I’ll speak to him as soon as he gets back” said Harry. Hermione totally agreed
with him.

That evening Harry and Hermione waited patiently in the common room. When Ron walked in, he
looked slightly nervous. Harry went near him and thumped him hard on the back.

“Quite a hero!” said Harry, jokingly.

“What do you mean….You know? How?” Ron asked confused. He was sure that Ginny hadn’t written to
Harry or Hermione.

“You are famous these days Ron,” said Harry, handing him the Quibbler. Ron gaped at what he saw.
He still didn’t know what Harry thought of it. He seemed pleased though.

“Does this mean – I mean – are we okay?” asked Ron tentatively.

“All is forgiven. You’ve done enough to show that you are the same Ron as before and not the
spirit which captured you a few months ago. Welcome back!” replied Harry with a smile. Hermione
joined them and grinned at Ron.

“Thanks a lot both of you. It means a lot to me. I missed your company,” said Ron happily. He
noticed the Harry and Hermione’s joined hands and smirked. “Is it what I think it is?” he asked
playfully, though he already knew the answer.

“Yes it is. It happened on Christmas Day,” replied Hermione.

“Congrats both of you! I saw it coming a long time. I’ll just keep my stuff and come back,” said
Ron, walking up to the dorms.

“He took that well, didn’t he?” said Hermione.

“That he did but I think a certain blonde is behind this transformation,” replied Harry.
Hermione gave him a knowing smile.

In the night Hermione had gone to bed early. Harry and Ron were in the Gryffindor common room.
Harry briefed Ron about his and Hermione’s getting together. Ron told him about the time he spent
with Luna during the holidays. By his voice Harry knew his suspicions were right.

“You seem to have it really bad for Luna,” commented Harry.

“I don’t know. She’s been there for me when I was alone. She helped me survive through that
torrid period. I want to like her but my previous experience stops me. What if I hurt her like the
others?” said Ron truthfully.

“What is different about Luna?” asked Harry.

“With Luna things have happened naturally. Both of us are ourselves when we are near one
another. We don’t have anything to prove to each other. We don’t need to impress each other like
couples normally do,” replied Ron without hesitation.

“That’s good. I think your feelings for her are real but that is for you to figure out, not me,”
said Harry.

“What if we get together and then things don’t work out?” asked Ron.

“Then you have to be truthful and tell her. Going behind her back is not an option,” replied
Harry firmly.

“Thanks a lot Harry. It’s so nice to have you as my friend again. I was afraid I’d blown
everything up,” said Ron.

“You nearly did but controlled the damage well,” said Harry.



12. An Unwanted Visitor
-----------------------

**A/N: I’m out of the writer’s block which I encountered before the last chapter. It was mainly
because I was writing after such a long time. Considering there was an update after so long, the
response wasn’t bad. Thanks to everyone who reviewed. Keep them coming. There seems to be very
contrasting reactions to Ron’s character. Hope you like the way he turns out.**

**In this chapter you meet a character for the first time in this story. As the chapter title
suggests her role is not positive. Sorry to inform his/her fans that unlike Ron he/she plays a
total negative role in this story. You would make that out by the end of this chapter. Also in this
chapter I wrote a small conversation involving Hagrid. It was one of the most difficult things to
write. So I’m warning all Hagrid fans that they won’t be seeing much of him in this story. Hope you
enjoy this chapter!**

Chapter Twelve: An Unwanted Visitor

“GREAT SAVE BY WEASLEY!” boomed Luna through the microphone, “He has been magnificent today.
That’s the fourth time he saved from a seemingly hopeless situation. He is fast becoming one of the
best keep…,” she was interrupted by Professor Sprout.

“Miss Lovegood could kindly tell us what is happening in the match instead of singing praises of
Mr. Weasley,” said Professor Sprout curtly. Luna blushed.

“Gryffindor are leading by twenty points… Match has been closer than expected… Weasley charging
ahead… passes to Thomas… Shoots…. SCORES! But what do we have here? Potter is diving for the
Snitch… Surely he’s seen it…. The Hufflepuff seeker is nowhere in sight. HE’S CAUGHT IT! GRYFFINDOR
WINS AGAIN!”

The stands erupted. This was one of the best Gryffindor teams for a long time. The best thing
was they were gelling as a team. Individual glory was long forgotten. Harry had given the
youngsters a sense of security. This helped them play their natural game. Hermione rushed out and
quietly pecked Harry on the cheek. Ron observed this and understood the mistake he’d made. This was
how it was supposed to be between boyfriend and girlfriend.

“Why are you looking so serious? You’ve just won a match. It was one of your best performances.
Weasley is definitely my king!” said Luna coming over to Ron.

“Just thinking about a few things. Match was great! We made heavy weather to start with but
always had faith in Harry. Anyway why are you here?” asked Ron.

“I came to congratulate you. As I said this is the best I’ve seen you play,” she replied and
kissed him on the cheek before walking away. Ron stood dazed. He’d just observed Harry and Hermione
to realize how natural their relationship was. Within a couple of minutes exactly the same thing
had happened with him. What was the meaning of this?

Harry woke up early next morning. He sat down on the common room sofa. Hermione wasn’t up yet.
Hedwig flew in with a letter. Wondering who could be writing to him, he opened it.

*Dear Harry,*

*You must be surprised to hear from me. It’s a shame we haven’t kept up during the past two
years. Anyway I have some news on my side. After finishing Hogwarts I joined the Quidditch training
program at* *London**. I am not yet good enough to play professionally so I thought this
would be a good option. Here I not only get to improve my skills but also train youngsters in the
game. Till now I was training children who have not yet joined Hogwarts. The Professors were very
happy with my work. As a test they are sending me to Hogwarts to help out first and second year
students with their flying skills. Of course I am very excited by this. If I pass this test, I’ll
be eligible for a job as a semi amateur trainer. I will be at Hogwarts till the end of this
academic year.*

*Harry, I’m sorry things didn’t work out between us last time. I feel as if it is my fault.
When you wanted to meet Hermione at Hogsmede I’d got angry. Probably I got scared that you’d ditch
me for her. However now I think I was wrong. Hermione is not of your league. She’s just a plain
bookworm. You would definitely look for someone better than her. I don’t mean it in a bad way.
Hermione is and always will be your best friend but never anything more than that. I feel like a
fool for thinking you’ll fall for her. I hope we can talk it out once I get there. I’ll be arriving
today in the evening. Can’t wait to see you again.*

*With regards,*

*Cho.*

Harry crumpled the letter angrily. This was too much. He would not tolerate such hateful words
towards Hermione. He didn’t care a wee bit for Cho and she thought she could come back into his
life smoothly. How egoistic could she get? What did she think of herself? He would clear this
matter once and for all in front of her. That would put her in her place. He went back into his
bedroom to get dressed.

Meanwhile Hermione came into the common room. Seeing the state of the sofa she knew Harry had
already been to the common room. Her eyes fell on a crumpled piece of paper on the floor. Curious
she opened it out. Despite it being a letter addressed to Harry she couldn’t help not reading it.
She felt guilty about sneaking into his personal matters but once she read the contents of the
letter, her throat dried. Clearly Cho wanted to get back together with Harry. What would be Harry’s
reaction? Cho was miles ahead of her when it came to looks. Normally teenage boys are taken in by
looks. Also Cho’s description of her hurt her. She began feeling very insecure about the whole
thing. What if Harry dumped her for Cho? The very thought made her eyes teary.

After getting ready Harry walked back to the common room. The sight of Hermione crying welcomed
him.

“What’s the matter sweetheart?” Harry asked, rushing to her and putting his arms around her.
Hermione continued sobbing. Harry grew concerned.

“I read the letter Cho wrote to you,” she answered finally.

“Oh shit! I should have taken it back to my room! But you aren’t crying because of that. You
would have seen the ball I made out of it. Cho means nothing to me. I was furious by the way she
described you. Now tell me why you are crying?” said Harry.

“I feel insecure Harry. Cho is far better than me in looks. What if she takes you away from me?”
said Hermione.

“I’m disappointed to hear that from you Hermione. I thought you knew me better. Do you think I
like you because of looks? I like you because of your heart, your intelligence, your loyalty and
the six wonderful years you’ve given me. On top of this you are gorgeous, at least to me. You seem
to have forgotten I confessed my love for you. If it makes you feel better, I’ll say it again. You
are the only one for me Hermione and I love you. No Cho Chang can come between you and me,” said
Harry loudly. He followed it by kissing her tenderly. She responded with equal tenderness.

“Thanks a lot Harry. What you just said means a lot to me. I just felt bad after reading the
letter. You make me feel loads better already. And yeah, I love you too,” she said with a
smile.

Later that day during dinner Professor McGonagall made the dreaded announcement. “We have a
special guest at Hogwarts. As a part of her training Miss Cho Chang will be assisting first and
second years in their flying lessons. She’ll be here till the end of the year. I wish to welcome
Miss Chang to Hogwarts and hope that her stay here is a successful one.” There was some scattered
clapping as Cho gracefully walked towards Ravenclaw table and sat down. She winked towards Harry on
the way. He looked away. When dinner finished Cho asked Harry aside. He gave an assured smile to
Hermione before reluctantly following Cho.

“Hi Harry, it’s so nice to see you again,” Cho said, smiling.

“Hi Cho, good to know you’re going to be here,” said Harry in a disinterested voice. Cho looked
slightly confused.

“You got my letter, didn’t you?” she asked.

“I did,” Harry replied shortly.

“Well…,” said Cho, moving closer to him.

“Well what?” asked Harry irritably. Cho thought Harry was putting up an act to tease her. She
decided to take matters into her own hands.

“Harry I again want to apologize for how things ended between us. I shouldn’t have reacted the
way I did. But I want a chance to make amends. I still like you very much. I really admire the way
you finished off You-Know-Who. I was hoping we could get together again,” she said simply.

“Just a minute Cho,” said Harry. “Hermione, can you come over here?” he hollered. Hermione came
and nodded politely towards Cho who looked more and more confused. Harry held Hermione close before
speaking to Cho. “Cho you would remember Hermione. She is my girlfriend and I love her. That should
answer your question,” he said with a hint of sarcasm in his voice.

“Oh I see. That’s okay,” replied a shocked Cho. “We can still be friends, can’t we?” she
added.

“I guess. If you don’t have anything more to say I’d like to get back. Me and Hermione need to
discuss a few things,” said Harry. Cho nodded.

Cho sat in her bedroom that night. Things couldn’t have been worse. She had hoped that after
getting back to Hogwarts, she would get Harry to go out with her. Being Harry Potter’s girlfriend
would certainly have been useful in her training. Harry was her. She had been his first girlfriend.
How could some silly bookworm named Hermione Granger steal him away from her? It was unacceptable.
She would make sure she got her man. Whatever it took she would do. This was a battle and she would
fight for her right.

Cho started thinking of ways to get to Harry. He had made it clear that he was not interested.
She hated Hermione for stealing Harry. However she realized that Hermione was probably the only way
for her to get to Harry. So she needed to befriend her. If Hermione trusted her then Harry too
would ease up. She needed to know as much about Harry as possible. The long day had got her tired.
She dozed off.

*“Hey Cho, I’m so sorry about last night. I didn’t mean what I said,” said Harry.*

*“What do you mean Harry? I don’t get you. One moment you are with Hermione and next moment
you come rushing to me,” asked Cho.*

*“That’s exactly what it is. Last night I was with Hermione but later I realized I’d been an
idiot to turn you down. Hermione is fine but she can’t compare with you. You are probably the most
gorgeous person in this world. I can’t turn you down just like that. Any other guy would have to
wait ages to get someone like you. The two of us have so much in common. We’re both good Quidditch
players, seekers to be precise. It’s my good luck that you want to be with me,” replied
Harry.*

*“Thanks, you’re so sweet,” said Cho shyly.*

*“Will you be my girlfriend Cho?” whispered Harry. Cho didn’t answer. Her lips crashed upon
Harry’s. They kissed passionately for several minutes. Harry’s hand was moving all over Cho’s
body.*

*“I take that as yes,” smiled Harry. Cho nodded. They started kissing again. This time it was
even more passionate. Cho was moaning against his mouth. Harry shifted his attention to Cho’s
sensitive spot on the side of her neck. He bit it gently.*

*“Oh Yes! Don’t stop Harry!” she almost screamed. To her surprise Harry stopped.*

*“We can’t do this here. Anybody can see us here,” he said breathlessly.*

*“Well, I have my personal bedroom. Want to move there?” she asked mischievously. Harry nodded
eagerly. During the entire walk to the bedroom they couldn’t keep their hands off each other.
Finally they reached Cho’s bedroom.*

*“This is going to be fun. I hope you’re up to it,” said Harry. Cho grinned.*

*“Oh yes. I’m ready for anything you have to offer,” replied Cho slyly, closing the door
behind her.*

Damn! Why did it have to end there? It had been such a wonderful dream. It was exactly like she
wanted her and Harry to be. She wished some part of it could be real. Just as she was getting into
bed, she remembered something in the dream that could be useful. Their common interest in
Quidditch. Quidditch was the only way she could get to spend some time alone with Harry.

In the morning Cho decided to put her multiple plans into action. The first years had their
flying lesson in the late afternoon so she was free in the morning. The first thing she needed to
do was to find Hermione. Luck was smiling on her today. She found Hermione picking up a sheaf of
papers which had scattered on the floor. It was an empty corridor so nobody was helping her. Cho
took her chance and started helping her to pick up the papers.

“Nice day isn’t it?” asked Cho, starting a conversation.

“It is,” replied Hermione.

“Hermione, I didn’t know you and Harry were together. That’s why I asked him. If I’d known I
would not even have thought about getting together with him. I hope you understand that,” said Cho
trying to sound truthful. Hermione was surprised.

“It’s okay Cho. I’m sure Harry will understand,” said Hermione, still not looking at Cho.

“You know I still want to be friends with you and Harry. I think I made him angry yesterday. I
feel really bad for that. Could you please apologize to him on my behalf? I don’t think he’ll
listen to me at this point of time,” said Cho sadly.

“I’ll give him the message,” replied Hermione. All the papers were in her hands now. She thanked
Cho for the help.

“You don’t need to thank me. I should be thanking you for hearing me out. Please remember to
tell Harry what I said,” said Cho and briefly hugged Hermione before going back to her room.
Hermione was intrigued by Cho’s behavior. Why was she being so nice? Normally she wasn’t like this.
Was there a catch somewhere? She needed to talk to Harry about this.

In the evening Hermione saw Harry talking to Ron in the Gryffindor common room. She was glad
that Harry had got his best mate back. She had felt partly responsible for the end of Harry and
Ron’s friendship. Though it would take a long time for the three of them to get back to where they
were, they would eventually get there.

“I hate to interrupt but I want to discuss something with Harry,” she said. “Ron you can stay
too,” she added seeing that Ron was preparing to leave. Ron decided to stay. It was nice when the
three of them together. Just like it always had been.

“I was telling Ron about the Cho incident. That girl has some nerve,” said Harry hotly.

“What a coincidence. I was about to talk about her as well. She had lots to say today when we
bumped into each other in the morning,” said Hermione.

“Did she say anything hateful to you? I’ll kill her if she did,” Harry almost shouted, standing
up.

“Relax Harry! No need to panic. If she did I’m more than capable of taking care of it myself.
But what she did was quite the opposite. She was so nice and friendly. It is so uncharacteristic of
her that it makes me suspicious,” replied Hermione calmly.

“What did she say?” asked Harry, sitting down again. Hermione told him the whole story. She was
careful not to miss out any detail.

“Doesn’t sound like her at all,” commented Ron.

“So how do we tackle her?” asked Hermione.

“Hmmm… as far as I know Cho wouldn’t do anything bad. I’m still curious about her sudden change
in behavior. We have to be careful of her. Just be polite with her when she talks to you and don’t
socialize. I will keep out of her way as long as possible. You do the same,” said Harry. Hermione
nodded.

“I hope this is not one of her tricks to get you Harry,” said Ron.

“I don’t think so but would like to be careful all the same,” replied Harry.

That night Harry and Hermione finished their homework early. Since Harry hadn’t had much
exercise during the day, he decided to go for a night walk.

“I’m going for a walk. Want to come along?” he asked Hermione.

“Sure. Anything to spend time with you,” replied Hermione flirting. They walked all though the
grounds of Hogwarts. They passed Hagrid’s hut and decided stopped by to say hi.

Meanwhile Cho was looking out of her window. She saw two figures out in the grounds. Who would
be walking around so late? If the Heads caught them they would be in big trouble. She crept out of
her room and followed the two of them. As she got closer she recognized them as Harry and Hermione.
No wonder they weren’t afraid of getting caught by the Heads! She kept following them. She didn’t
know why she was doing it? Perhaps it would help her get to know something about Harry which might
be helpful later on. Thankfully for her the two of them didn’t snog. She couldn’t bear the sight.
She had to wait for ten long minutes when the two of them went into Hagrid’s hut.

The whole exercise had been a futile exercise for Cho. She didn’t find out anything except
Harry’s favourite walk route. Grumbling she got back to her room.

Hermione looked behind her shoulder. She had been suspecting that they were being followed but
Harry dismissed it. He said some first year might be trying to catch them snogging. Hermione wasn’t
convinced but didn’t press further.

The following morning Harry, Ron and Hermione were sitting together for breakfast. While
Hermione was busy reading the Daily Prophet, Harry and Ron were discussing a few Quidditch
strategies. Ron noticed Hagrid coming towards them.

“Hi Hagrid,” greeted Ron.

“Hiya Ron, I’m glad ter see yeh with yer old pals again,” said Hagrid.

“I know, I’m glad too,” said Ron happily.

“Ron, I hope yer fight with Harry and Hermione had nothin ter do with me. Yeh don’ have any
problem with me right?” asked Hagrid. Ron was bewildered.

“No Hagrid. What on earth made you feel that? Why would I have any problem with you?” countered
Ron.

“That’s nice ter hear. But why didn’ yeh come into me hut last night with them?” asked Hagrid.
Ron was even more confused. Harry spoke for him.

“Hagrid, last night it was just me and Hermione. Ron wasn’t with us. You can say we were on a
romantic night stroll,” Harry said to Hagrid.

“That’s strange. I saw three pairs of footprints in the lane leading ter me hut. Maybe it was
someone else. See yeh guys later,” said Hagrid and walked away. Hermione looked at Harry with an ‘I
told you so’ look on her face.

“So we were being followed. Maybe it was a first year as I said before,” said Harry. Hermione
looked indignant.

“Harry, how can you be so casual about this? Obviously someone is trying to follow our moves.
That’s not a good thing even if it is a harmless first year,” she said quickly.

“Hermione nobody will harm us here. Please don’t worry. I’ll protect you if there’s any
problem,” said Harry soothingly. Hermione calmed down.

“I’ll be right back,” said Hermione and rushed out of the hall.

“Am I being too casual about this?” Harry asked Ron.

“I dunno. I wouldn’t be very pleased if I got to know somebody was following me and my
girlfriend,” replied Ron.

“I’m not saying that I’m pleased. I’m just not panicking. Nobody in this castle would have
anything against me and Hermione,” said Harry.

“Hermione doesn’t feel that way. Harm or not, nobody likes their privacy taken away. How would
you feel if somebody deliberately walked into you and Hermione snogging?” asked Ron.

“I know what you mean. I’ll talk to Hermione. There she comes,” said Harry.

“Harry it’s not some silly first year. I just checked the size of the footprint. It’s larger
than mine but smaller than yours. What do we do?” Hermione asked panting.

“I’m sorry for being so casual earlier but I have the perfect solution. We’ll carry the
Marauderer’s map whenever we go out,” replied Harry.

It had been two days since Harry and Hermione had been stalked. It was a Sunday. Harry was
relaxing in his bedroom. He wanted to spend a restful day since it had been a long week. But his
plans were short lived as Hermione came into his room.

“Harry Professor McGonagall wants to meet you,” she said. Harry groaned and went to the
fireplace.

“Good morning, Mr. Potter,” greeted McGonagall.

“Good morning Professor,” replied Harry.

“Potter I had something to discuss with you. As you know Miss Chang is here to train younger
students. Yesterday she came to me and said though she was enjoying herself tremendously, her own
training was suffering. She wants to keep in touch with playing Quidditch. To play Quidditch she
needs a partner and I would like you to be her partner,” said McGonagall. Harry gaped at her in
horror. He had to get out of this. He decided to tell McGonagall the truth.

“Actually Professor I don’t think that’s a very good idea. You know me and Cho had… sort of a…
an affair two years back which didn’t work out well. So I’m not very comfortable around her. Maybe
you can arrange somebody else,” he said in a pleading voice.

“Don’t be ridiculous Potter. This is a strictly professional matter. Miss Chang herself chose
you as her partner. She said you were the best seeker at Hogwarts and she needed to compete with
the best. I expect you to be there at the time she tells you to,” McGonagall said sternly.

“So Cho chose me as her partner,” said Harry.

“Yes she did,” replied McGonagall.

“And there’s no way out of this for me,” asked Harry hoping for some miracle.

“No there isn’t,” said McGonagall, her voice still stern. Harry felt defeated. There was nothing
he could do. With a polite nod he went back to his quarters. Hermione saw the forlorn expression on
his face and asked what had happened. When Harry told her she was equally indignant. But she too
knew there was no way out of it.

“You better be nice to her Harry, otherwise she’ll call you for extra practice sessions just to
irritate you,” she said.

“I hate this. Why did it have to be me? I’d much rather spend that time with you,” said Harry
looking very frustrated.

“What we want, we don’t always get,” replied Hermione calming him down. To make matters worse
Hedwig came in with a small note saying ‘First practice session at 2 pm today. Cho.’ Harry just
growled on reading it.

At ten to two Harry reluctantly took out his broom and set off for the Quidditch pitch. He could
never have imagined there would be a day when he would not be looking forward to flying. Cho was
waiting for him.

“Thanks for agreeing to this. It is really important for me,” she said. Harry snorted. He wanted
to say ‘I didn’t have a choice in the matter’ but remembered Hermione’s words.

“Okay let me explain how we’ll practice. I’ll let the snitch loose. We’ll be throwing Bludgers
at each other to try and divert each other’s attention. In the meantime we have to keep our eyes
open for the snitch. The first one to catch the snitch wins,” said Cho. Harry nodded. Cho released
the snitch. It was very boring for Harry. He caught the snitch every time before Cho.

“I think we’ll call it a day Harry,” said Cho after Harry had caught the snitch for the fifth
time. Harry sighed in relief. As he was flying down he heard a loud scream behind him. Cho had
fallen off her broom.

“What happened?” Harry asked going up to her.

“I just felt dizzy and fell. Luckily I was quite close to the ground. I seem to have twisted my
knee though,” she replied in a shaky voice. She tried to stand up but failed.

“Can you help me?” she asked Harry. Harry held out his hand and Cho managed to stand up holding
it tightly. But when it came to walking she couldn’t manage. She had put all her weight on to
Harry’s shoulder. She leaned against him before hobbling slowly.

“I hope it’s not a problem Harry,” she said.

“It’s okay. I’ll drop you at the hospital wing,” replied Harry stiffly. He was very
uncomfortable with Cho so close to him. Her body was pressed against his back. They were moving
very slowly indeed. As they got to the hospital wing they noticed Madam Pomfrey was not there. Cho
sat down on a chair.

“Shall I go and call Madam Pomfrey?” Harry asked out of courtesy.

“No that’s okay. You’ve done enough already. I’ll wait for her. Thanks for everything,” she
replied. Harry was only to glad to walk off. When Harry was out of sight Cho stood up with a
triumphant smile on her face. It had been so easy to trick Harry. This was something she had
thought of right there in the field. She had tremendously enjoyed being so close to Harry. She
didn’t know feigning injury could be so easy. Luckily for her Madam Pomfrey wasn’t around. Being an
expert she might have caught her act. This was going too easily. Before long Harry would be
hers.



13. Manipulation and Consequence
--------------------------------

**A/N: Sorry for the delayed update. Life has been busy over the past few days. I wanted some
opinion on one thing. Very few reviewers hated Cho’s character in the last chapter. All of you were
concerned about Harry and Hermione but nobody (except one) called Cho ‘evil’. I’d like to mention
that Cho plays a FULLY negative role in the story. If you think I’m being too nice to her let me
know. I want everyone to hate her. If you are a fan of Cho, I’m sorry. A lot happens in this
chapter. There are Harry/Hermione and Ron/Luna moments. So the shippers will have a field day.
Please leave a review after you read. All those who reviewed before… Thank you.**

Chapter Thirteen: Manipulation and Consequence

Over the next few days Harry’s Quidditch practice with Cho continued. He wasn’t enjoying it one
bit but luckily Cho didn’t keep him very long. He was constantly irritated by her talkative nature.
It seemed as if she wanted to chat rather than play. He remembered Hermione’s words and never let
her get him angry. As far as possible he answered in monosyllables or single sentences. However one
day Cho asked him to stay back after practice.

“I’ve got something for you. I remember how much you like chocolates. My mum sent me some
homemade chocolates. I saved some for you,” said Cho, opening her bag to take out the chocolates.
Harry did not want to spend time eating chocolates with Cho but he was touched by her generosity.
He didn’t have the heart to refuse her.

“That’s nice of you Cho,” he said. Cho smiled at him, handing him a few pieces of chocolates. As
Harry ate the chocolates he couldn’t help feeling he’d eaten them sometime before. He saw Cho
laughing at him.

“Is there something wrong with me?” he asked questioningly.

“There’s chocolate on cheek. Wait! I’ll fix it,” replied Cho. With her thumb she rubbed Harry’s
cheek, near the lips lingering a little longer than intended.

“Took you a long time to ‘fix’ it,” commented Harry. Cho just shrugged. After finishing the
chocolates Harry took leave. Cho wanted to laugh. It was so easy to fool people like Harry. He
would never have agreed to eat chocolates with her but she had cleverly brought her mother into the
picture to make him stay. He didn’t even realize that it was an uncommon chocolate, which she had
bought. Also didn’t catch her ploy to touch his cheek.

As Harry was walking back after practice with Cho, he met Luna on the way. She stopped on seeing
him.

“Hi Harry, how have you been?” she asked.

“I’ve been doing well except the additional burden of practicing Quidditch with Cho. I guess it
goes without saying that you’re making tremendous progress with Ron,” replied Harry. Luna turned as
red as Ron’s hair.

“Yes, we’ve been getting along really well. I was there for him during his time of loneliness
and he saved me from those brutes. I like him even more than before now. I know what a good person
he is despite the mistake he made. I’m really glad that you guys are talking again. He was badly
missing your and Hermione’s company. He never showed it but I knew all the same,” said Luna.

“I’m glad too. Though the seriousness of his mistake cannot be ignored, he redeemed himself by
saving you. That was quite a heroic act. No wonder his parents were so proud of him. So what about
the big step? Will you wait for him or take the initiative yourself,” asked Harry.

“It all depends, Harry. I think Ron is still not fully over the mistake he made. So he may want
some more time before getting into another relationship. I’m in no hurry and am willing to give him
that time. However if a perfect opportunity does arise I won’t hesitate on telling him,” replied
Luna.

“Wow, in such a short while you’ve got to know Ron very well. I’ll be the happiest man when the
two of you get together. It would all be due to your efforts Luna. You handled the situation very
well,” said Harry.

“I couldn’t have done it without you. Your advice was helpful at every step. Thanks a lot for
everything,” said Luna, hugging Harry and pecking him on the cheek. This entire scene was witnessed
by Cho, who was coming back from the field. She wished she had her muggle camera. From the angle
she was watching it had looked like they were about to snog. Of course she knew that Harry would
never cheat Hermione. This was the perfect occasion to cause some tension between them by using
this small incident with Luna. But she needed a photo for it. How could she get that?

Cho sat in her room for a long time thinking about this. In the magical world there had to be a
way to get that photo. The idea of using a time turner had come to her mind but that was not
feasible. Firstly she didn’t have a time turner and secondly even if she did it would have been too
risky. Her muggle camera was in her hand. She wished she could get into her own mind and take a
photograph with it.

That was it! She had to get into her own mind and that could be done only through a Pensieve.
She had heard from Harry that there was a Pensieve in the Headmistress’ office. She needed to get
there. Slowly she made her way to the office.

“Yes Miss Chang, can I help you?” asked McGonagall.

“Professor I wondered if I could use the Pensieve. It is quite important for me,” answered
Cho.

“The Pensieve! Why would you need that?” McGonagall questioned. Cho hesitated slightly.

“Actually Professor, it’s a personal matter,” replied Cho. McGonagall didn’t seem fully
convinced. Cho patiently waited.

“Miss Change, you’d know that the Pensieve is not a thing to play around with. Professor
Dumbledore or I have never let any student use it before. But as you are not a student I’m treating
you as an adult and letting you use it. Please do not misuse it,” said McGonagall finally. Cho
thanked her before moving to the Pensieve. She touched the wand to her head and concentrated on the
Harry-Luna incident. After getting the memory into the Pensieve she jumped in. It was perfect. She
got exactly what she had wanted. In the photo Harry and Luna were hugging and it looked like they
were about to kiss. She felt slightly guilty for betraying McGonagall’s trust but it could not be
helped. Now the question was how to spread this around the school. She couldn’t personally deliver
the photo to Hermione.

Her brains were working very well tonight. She thought out a decent plan for this too. Before
dinner in the night she’d place one or two copies at the Slytherin table. The moment they would see
it her job would get done. Slytherin’s hate towards Harry was too great for them to miss an
opportunity like this. With the passing of Voldemort their house had been rather subdued.

Next morning when Harry and Hermione went into the Great Hall for breakfast, they noticed that
everyone was staring at them curiously. Ignoring the stares they sat down at their usual places.
For the first time they suspected something was wrong. Even the Gryffindor’s were passing them icy
glares, especially to Harry.

“What’s the matter?” Hermione asked Ginny. She didn’t like what was going on.

“I’m not the best person to tell you,” replied Ginny. Hermione grew frustrated. She was about to
yell at Ginny when she saw the photograph in Seamus’ hand. She snatched it from him. Her eyes
widened at what she saw. Harry too saw the picture. He was about to protest but before he could do
so, Hermione got up and walked out of the hall. Harry groaned in frustration.

“Harry, have you seen Luna anywhere?” asked Ron, running up to him.

“No. She must be pretty shaken by this thing. You talk to her while I find Hermione. She just
walked out. Wait… what’s your reaction to this? You act as if I wasn’t involved at all,” said
Harry.

“Harry I know both you and Luna very well. I know both of you wouldn’t do this or at least the
way it seems,” said Ron simply. Harry nodded towards him in appreciation. The two of them went in
different directions to find Hermione and Luna. Harry had a good idea where Hermione would be. In
her favourite spot near the lake. He was right.

“I was expecting you sooner,” said Hermione on seeing Harry.

“I just met Ron on the way. He was looking for Luna. Hermione I…,” started Harry but was cut off
by Hermione.

“You don’t need to explain anything Harry. I trust you. I also know Luna quite well. So
something like this between you too is unimaginable. I just walked out to avoid the attention of
everyone,” said Hermione.

“You mean… I don’t know what to say. What did I do to deserve you? You certainly know me better
than I know myself,” said Harry, kissing Hermione gently.

“After you said you love me, I know that you wouldn’t cheat on me. People can think what they
like but I’m on your side Harry,” said Hermione firmly.

“Thanks Hermione. However I feel that you deserve an explanation. I couldn’t say it earlier
because I was sworn to secrecy but now I have to tell you,” said Harry. He told her everything
about Luna’s feelings for Ron. He started from the Halloween Ball, their talk when Ron was
isolated, Ron and Luna’s meetings during the holidays and finally about their talk the previous
day. Hermione didn’t seem surprised.

“I always knew Luna had something for Ron but not the seriousness. She took a big chance by
approaching him after the ‘three girl fiasco’ but it paid off for her. So when do you think they
will hook up?” asked Hermione.

“My bet is within the next one week,” replied Harry.

“We need to investigate who’s been spreading these photographs. First we are followed during our
walk and now this. Who would have something against us? It can’t be any of the younger students. As
the Heads we are quite popular among them. Only sixth or seventh years could have caused this. We
can rule the Gryffindor’s out. That doesn’t leave many,” said Hermione scratching her head.

“Whoever it is we’ll make sure he or she is punished,” replied Harry in a determined voice.

**** **** ****

In the meantime Ron could not find Luna anywhere. He had checked almost every corner of the
school. He had asked Terry Boot to check inside the Ravenclaw common room. She was not there
either. After searching for over half an hour he found her near the owlery. She was obviously
trying to hide from everyone. She looked in a bad state.

“Hey, it’s okay Luna. Don’t get upset. I don’t believe a bit of it,” said Ron comforting
her.

“Ron I only kissed Harry on the cheek. That shot was taken before I did that so it looks like
I’m about to…,” she stopped.

“I believe you. Harry’s fallen flat for Hermione and can never cheat her. You being a friend of
Hermione’s would never let her down. Some jerk has been letting out his frustration through this,”
said Ron soothingly.

“What’ll Hermione think of me? She’ll hate me,” said Luna.

“Hermione trusts Harry. She knows that he wouldn’t be like that with anybody other than her. The
moment Harry explains everything to her, she’ll believe him,” said Ron. Luna still wasn’t fully
convinced. Ron saw the pain in her eyes. Recently she had gone through so much for no fault of her.
It hurt him to see her like this. Both of them were sitting really close to each other. Before he
knew he had kissed her. He raised his head in shock.

“I’m so sorry Luna. I shouldn’t have done that. I’ve spoiled everything now. Please don’t leave
Luna. I didn’t mean to. It just sort of happened,” said Ron frantically. To his surprise Luna
hadn’t moved.

“Don’t be sorry Ron. I’ve wanted that from a long time. I’ve fancied you since ages. I’m not at
all sorry for what happened,” replied Luna.

“You mean to say you like me,” asked Ron.

“Yes. I like you a lot Ron,” said Luna. She hadn’t planned saying this today but the perfect
moment she had been waiting for had popped up.

“I don’t know how to reply,” said Ron. Luna was trembling in anticipation. What if Ron didn’t
feel the same way?

“Do you feel the same way about me Ron,” asked Luna getting to the point directly.

“Luna please don’t get me wrong. I have just got over my previous episode. You are the sole
reason for that. I like you very much. But so soon after ‘that’ I’m not confidant of myself. What
if I hurt you? This is not a rejection by any means. I’ll tell you sincerely that I feel the same
way as you. In fact I’ve never felt like this about anyone else. You’ve done a lot for me Luna so
I’ll ask you for another favor. Please give me a few days. I don’t need these days to think about
what you’ve said. I want to completely get over what happened earlier and start as a new Ron with
you. So you can call it a belated acceptance,” said Ron at length. He hoped Luna wouldn’t be
angry.

“I understand completely Ron. If you hadn’t kissed me today I wouldn’t have said anything. I
know you need time. Knowing that you feel the same way about me means a great deal to me,” replied
Luna. Ron sighed in relief and hugged her. They sat together for a long time.

**** **** ****

Harry had been planning for his and Hermione’s first month anniversary. He wanted to make it
special for her. Since they’d been to Hogsmede plenty of times, he was thinking of a different
location. Of course they would have to break school rules to escape out but by now they were
experts at it. He’d got Dobby to fix up a portkey. On the morning of twenty fifth of January
Hermione received a note from Harry.

*Be there at our common room by seven in the evening. We’re going out. Hope you are game on
breaking a few school rules. Happy anniversary. I love you. Harry.*

Hermione did as she was told. At seven in the evening she was all dressed up for the occasion
and waiting in their common room. When Harry entered his breath got caught in his throat. Hermione
noticed his reaction and became slightly self conscious.

“Do I look awful? I’ll change if you want,” she said.

“You look… WOW! I can’t describe it,” replied Harry. Hermione blushed.

“Thanks. You look pretty handsome yourself. So where are we going?” asked Hermione.

“We’re going to London for dinner and a movie. Dobby has setup the portkey. It will activate in
another two minutes. It is the sock on the shelf. I hope you are ready to go,” said Harry.

“As ready as I’ll ever be,” replied Hermione happily. As soon as the portkey activated they
touched it and were immediately transported to London.

The streets of London were quite crowded. People seemed busy with their work. It was a lot
different from what they were used to at Hogwarts. It was a nice change for both of them. Never in
their years at Hogwarts had they witnessed scenes like this. Hermione had been to places like this
during her childhood but didn’t remember much.

“Our reservations are at seven thirty. I know how much you like Indian food so I’ve booked
places for us at an Indian restaurant called ‘Curries’. We’ll decide on the movie after we eat,”
said Harry.

“Oh Harry, that’s so sweet of you. I’m sure we’ll have a wonderful time,” replied Hermione.

“As long as we’re together, we’ll have a good time,” said Harry, linking his fingers with
Hermione. They roamed around London till it was time for them to eat. The restaurant was a quiet
and peaceful one. They ordered ‘Tandoori Chicken’, ‘Sheekh Kebab’ and ‘Naan’. It was a delicious
meal. The romantic melodies playing in the background made the ambience perfect.

“That was perfect Harry. The Kebabs were brilliant. One of the best meals I’ve ever had. I loved
everything,” said Hermione, pecking Harry after they’d come out.

“Glad you loved it. We have basically two options for the movie. One is ‘Barry Trotter and the
Hobbit of Shire’ and the other is…,” he couldn’t complete as Hermione had already made her
choice.

“That one is awesome. Mum wrote to me saying it is one of the best movies she’s seen. Let’s
watch that,” she said excitedly. Harry agreed happily. They bought some popcorn before going in.
The hall was jam packed. They were lucky to get tickets.

“Sorry I won’t be able to snog you here,” joked Harry.

“I don’t mind. We’ve got an empty common room and the whole night for that,” replied Hermione
mischievously. Both of them laughed. The movie was as good as the meal. Overall it had been a very
successful date. They returned to Hogwarts around midnight.

“Thank you once again for everything Harry. This has been one of the best evenings of my life. I
could never imagine breaking school rules could be so enjoyable,” said Hermione.

“You’re welcome Hermione. It was amazing for me too. Your presence made all the difference for
me. I love you so much. I want to take up your offer on the empty common room but it’s getting
quite late. Tomorrow is a working day, so we should sleep,” replied Harry.

“Wait Harry! I’ve got something for you. I ordered them from Honeydukes. I know you love
chocolates,” she said giving him a pack of dark chocolates which were heart shaped.

“Hermione I didn’t know we were exchanging presents. I should have got something for you,” said
Harry sounding ashamed.

“Don’t be silly. You arranged everything for the wonderful evening. And being with you is the
biggest present of all,” replied Hermione.

“Thanks Hermione. You are the best,” said Harry kissing her passionately.

**** **** ****

While Harry and Hermione were away Cho had been looking for Harry. Due to an appointment with
her friend Marietta the next day she wanted to bring ahead the quidditch practice to that night.
She had constantly sent owls to Harry to ask him if it was okay with him but the owl returned with
the note every time. She was looking for someone from Gryffindor to pass the message. Finally she
found Ginny.

“Hey Ginny could you ask Harry to come out for a bit?” she asked.

“Harry would be in the Head’s quarters. We can’t reach him in any way other than sending an
owl,” replied Ginny.

“I’ve tried that but failed. It’s very important for me to contact him. Is there no other way?”
said Cho desperately.

“Well I’ve heard Hermione say there is a floo connection to McGonagall’s office,” said Ginny.
Cho thanked her and rushed to McGonagall’s office.

“What is it this time Miss Chang?” asked McGonagall.

“I’ve got to contact Harry desperately but am not able to reach him through owl. Please can I
use your fireplace? It’s very important,” replied Cho. McGonagall nodded.

As soon as Cho got to the Head’s quarters she realized it was empty. So Harry and Hermione had
sneaked out of school. Had they been in school the owl wouldn’t have returned. She could use this
against them later. She was about to go when it occurred to her that this was a perfect opportunity
to snoop around a bit. She went into Harry’s bedroom. The bed felt so nice. The pillow smelled of
Harry. Cho took a deep breath to take in the scent. If only she could lie next to him on this big
bed. Probably Hermione slept with him. She wondered if they’d gone all the way. The very thought
made her nauseous. She opened Harry’s closet. Again his scent filled the air around her. She closed
her eyes to enjoy the moment. She stood there for a couple of minutes just enjoying the sensation.
She went into his bathroom. She saw his shaving kit and other toiletries. She washed her face using
his soap. Finally she decided to move out. McGonagall might get suspicious. Also Harry and Hermione
could return any moment. With one last breath of Harry’s scent she flooed back.

**** **** ****

Also at the same time Ron and Luna were out for a walk. Since their talk a few days ago they had
grown still closer. To anyone else they would look like a happy couple. They had spent all their
free time together. Even during the meals they invariably sat with each other despite being in
different houses. Tonight seemed a bit different. It was a full moon night. Luna was gazing at
it.

“Isn’t the moon beautiful?” she asked Ron.

“The moon is synonymous with Luna. And yes Luna is beautiful,” replied Ron sounding casual. Luna
swatted his arm.

“Be serious,” she said.

“Alright the moon is beautiful but so is Luna. Is that a good enough answer, your highness?”
asked Ron dramatically. Luna laughed.

“Yes it is but your dramatization skills need brushing up,” said Luna. Such light moments were
very enjoyable for both of them. They sat together for a long time not speaking much before Ron
broke the silence.

“Luna?”

“Hmm”

“I’ve made up mind,” said Ron shortly.

“About what?” asked Luna, not understanding what he meant.

“About us. All my previous ‘things’ are behind me and I’d like you to be my girlfriend. I
promise to treat you like a queen,” said Ron. Luna only smiled back at him.

“Of course I’ll be your girlfriend. As I said, that is what I’ve always wanted,” she replied.
Ron leaned forward and kissed her.



14. All about Couples
---------------------

**A/N: I’m really getting slow on my updates. I wrote two pages of this chapter but deleted
them as I wasn’t satisfied. This chapter is lighter than the previous one. Cho’s appearance is
limited to one scene. I wanted to post this chapter near Valentines Day but reached this point
quickly. As the titles suggests new couples will be introduced here.**

**The response to the last chapter was amazing. All of you hated Cho – which was what I’d
wanted. There doesn’t seem to be a single Cho fan on this sight. A word of warning – Cho will get
much worse. So keep hating her. Ron’s getting together with Luna was also well appreciated. Please
keep up the reviews.**

Chapter 14: All about Couples

The morning of twenty sixth of January was a special one for Ron and Luna. Today their
relationship would be out in the open. Ron was slightly apprehensive as he was worried about
everyone’s reaction considering his past. As always they sat together. Today they were sitting with
Harry and Hermione in the Gryffindor table. Ron hadn’t said anything about him and Luna to anyone
yet. Harry noticed Ron continuously glancing towards Luna. He decided to play around a bit.

“So when did it happen?” he asked jokingly. Ron turned his head towards Harry in
astonishment.

“How do you know? We haven’t told anyone yet. I was about to tell the two of you after
breakfast. Did Luna tell you?” he asked, speaking very fast.

“I didn’t say anything,” said Luna, defensively. Now it was Harry’s turn to be surprised. He’d
expected Ron to tell him as soon as he and Luna had got together. Obviously Ron wanted to surprise
them.

“Congrats, both of you. It’s high time you got together,” said Hermione breaking the brief
period of silence. Seamus, who was sitting on the next chair, overheard Hermione.

“Yooooo! Ron and Luna are together,” he shouted. Ron glared at him indignantly. This was the
last thing he had wanted. But his indignation was short lived as whole room burst with applause.
Ron and Luna both blushed. It looked like Ron had been forgiven by the entire school after his
heroics. Harry gave him thumbs up to show his appreciation.

“You understand everyone’s feelings so well Harry! It’s a wonder how you got to know about Ron
and Luna without anyone telling you. I could never do that,” said Hermione admiringly.

“That I am but to be truthful it was a chance this time. I just saw Ron glancing at Luna every
minute so I decided to pull his leg. I had no idea that they were actually together. By the way
Ron, you didn’t answer my question. When did it happen? And why didn’t you tell me immediately?”
said Harry.

“I didn’t have a chance. It happened late last evening. Neither you nor Hermione were in the
common room when you came back. I was about to tell you sometime during breakfast but you guessed
before that,” replied Ron. Things were really looking up for him now. He had his friends back. He
had a girlfriend who he cared for. The school wasn’t against him anymore. He needed to thank one
person for this. He excused himself from the table and walked towards the teacher’s table. However
the person he was looking for wasn’t there. He went to his office but still couldn’t find him. Then
it struck him. The day before was a full moon night. So he went to the medical wing.

“Madam Pomfrey, can I talk to Professor Lupin for a minute?” he asked.

“If he’s awake you can. His bed is on the extreme right,” replied Madam Pomfrey. As Ron went to
Remus’ bed he noticed Tonks was sitting by him.

“Can I speak to you Professor Lupin? I promise not to take very long,” Ron asked Lupin.

“Sure Ron,” replied Remus.

“I just wanted to thank you for the help and advice you gave me during my isolated days. I would
have gone mad if I didn’t speak to you. Luckily things worked out for me after that. Now it is
almost back to normal,” said Ron.

“You’re welcome Ron. I should also congratulate on your newfound association with Miss
Lovegood,” said Lupin. Again Ron was amazed.

“Thank you Professor. How come everyone knows before me telling them?” he asked.

“It doesn’t take a genius when it is announced in front of the whole school. I was at the staff
table at that time,” replied Tonks before Remus could say anything. Ron nodded. He wondered if he
should tell them about what he knew about them but decided against it. He would have to reveal his
truth about eavesdropping.

**** **** ****

Cho was waiting at Three Broomsticks for Marietta to arrive. She wasn’t usually late. She
finally arrived speaking on her mobile phone. She smiled towards Cho but kept on talking for a few
minutes. Cho was getting impatient. First she had arrived late and was now keeping her waiting. At
last she was finished.

“Sorry for that. I was discussing something with Steve,” said Marietta apologetically.

“Probably how much you missed snogging him. He’s been away for only a couple of days. Is he that
special?” asked Cho.

“Well he’s survived the longest among all my boyfriends,” laughed Marietta.

“That would be two weeks if my guess is correct,” said Cho.

“I’m not that gross. Two months would be more like it. Dunno how long it’ll go on though,”
replied Marietta. “How about you? Any luck with Potter?” she added.

“He’s stuck up with that bookworm Granger. I’m trying to get him but haven’t had any success as
yet,” replied Cho.

“You can’t be serious Cho! That plane girl can’t outdo you. You are not trying hard enough.
Who’d want to be with her when they have someone like you at their disposal? I’d expected better of
you,” said Marietta as if scolding him.

“It’s not my fault. She seems to have a spell cast over him. I’m suspecting it could be some
Love Potion. I’ve thought about using that myself but unlike that idiot I don’t want to win Harry
by some silly trick,” replied Cho.

“Cho you were offered to train at Beauxbatons. You gave up seeing a new place and all the
excitement along with it just to get Harry. I thought you knew how important he was in your career.
Being Harry Potter’s girlfriend would get you all the privileges you want. Give it a good try. I
know you don’t like being defeated,” egged Marietta.

“I’ve tried everything I could have done. I’ve got Harry to spend time with me. I’ve tried to
cause tension between them. I’ve even followed them on their walks. There doesn’t seem to be any
way around it” said Cho.

“Have you tried setting some guy after Granger?” asked Marietta.

“Tell me, which boy in his senses would want to be with her. It’ll take me ages to find a guy
like this. Even if I did he’d be so bad that she’ll reject him. After all she does have Harry,”
replied Cho.

“Damn! This Granger has spoiled everything for you. All I can say is don’t give up. You’ve got
until June to get Potter. I’ve full confidence in you. You should continue following their walks.
It may seem futile a few times but you never know what secret you might come across. Also I know
you don’t want to trick Potter into getting together with you but what’s stopping you from tricking
Granger into leaving Potter? Once she is out of the way, you can make your move on Potter,”
explained Marietta. Cho smiled at her.

“You are the best Marietta. Let’s forget this for now and have something to drink,” said
Cho.

**** **** ****

It was the first week of February. Harry and Hermione were sitting by the lake finishing their
homework when Ron came rushing to them.

“Hey you are missing all the fun. Plenty has been happening in the Gryffindor common room this
afternoon. Come on fast,” panted Ron.

“What happened?” asked Harry getting up.

“Seamus and Lavender have hooked up. So have Dean and Parvati. And Neville is about to ask
someone as well,” replied Ron.

“Whoa! Seamus and Lavender was expected but Dean and Parvati, I never imagined. I thought
Parvati was still hurting over you,” said Hermione. Ron made an awkward face. He didn’t know what
to say. Harry sensed his situation.

“Don’t worry Ron. All that is behind us now. The fact that Lavender and Parvati have boyfriends
show that they are over with it as well,” said Harry. Ron visibly relaxed.

“Who do you think Neville is going to ask?” asked Hermione.

“It had better not be Ginny,” said Ron firmly.

“Sorry to disappoint you old pal but my guess is Ginny. They have spent a lot of time together
over the past few days. It’s a well known fact that he’s liked Ginny ever since the Yule ball,”
commented Harry. Ron looked at him indignantly.

“Don’t behave like a Dad Ron. Ginny is old enough to manage her love life herself. She is as old
as your girlfriend if you need a reminder. I think Harry is right. I have noticed how Neville looks
at Ginny,” rebuked Hermione. Ron didn’t say anything. Whatever others said to him Ginny would
always be a baby sister to him. They entered their common room, only to be greeted by loud
chants.

“Neville and Gin-ny sitting on a tree! K-I-S-S-I-N-G!” chanted Seamus, Lavender, Parvati and
Dean together. Ginny and Neville were sitting together.

“What the hell is going on here?” shouted Ron before he could stop himself. The chanting
stopped. Ginny stood up though Neville looked terrified.

“In short Neville asked me to be his girlfriend and I agreed,” she replied simply. Ron had
realized his mistake. For the first time Ron saw that Ginny had actually grown up. A year ago she
would have shouted back at him but today she had handled the situation with admirable maturity.

“I’m sorry! I shouldn’t have reacted that way. I’m sure you and Neville will make a great
couple,” said Ron sincerely. Everyone looked astounded.

“Who are you and what have you done to Ron Weasley?” asked Seamus, pretending to be angry.

“I believe a certain Miss Lovegood is behind the transformed Mister Weasley,” said Harry.

“Thanks for the support Ron. I was expecting the worst when you shouted. Actually I asked you to
fetch Harry and Hermione so that I could ask in your absence. Seamus and Dean already knew my
plans, so they gave me the privacy I wanted,” said Neville. Harry and Hermione chortled. Ron joined
them.

“This is unfair Ron. Do you remember the torrid time you gave me when I was dating Ginny? Even
Harry didn’t escape a raised eyebrow or two. But Neville has totally gotten away,” protested Dean.
Everybody laughed again.

“So no more eligible bachelors left among seventh year Gryffindors,” commented Ron.

“We should celebrate all of us having wonderful girlfriends,” said Neville tightening his arm
around Ginny. Now that Ron was supportive, he didn’t mind showing his affection.

“Hey what about a ‘boys night out’?” asked Dean enthusiastically.

“That’s a great idea mate,” replied Seamus.

“Let’s have it this weekend,” said Neville.

“I can get permission from Professor McGonagall,” offered Harry.

“Did anyone think about inviting us?” asked Parvati. Hermione, Ginny and Lavender nodded to back
her up.

“Didn’t you hear the word ‘boys’? I hope you don’t consider yourself a boy,” countered
Seamus.

“Sorry girls but this one is only for boys. If you want, we can all go out together sometime
later,” said Dean. The girls didn’t look satisfied but didn’t object. The ‘Boys night out’ was
fixed for the coming weekend.

On the decided day Harry, Ron, Neville, Seamus and Dean met at the common room at six in the
evening. Professor McGonagall had granted permission. They were going to spend the evening at Hog’s
Head. They ordered butterbears on getting there.

“Let’s all describe our romantic lives. I mean how we liked the girl, how we asked and so on.
Personal matters can be kept secret,” suggested Seamus. Everyone agreed. Ron was the first. His
story was touching. Especially when Luna came out of nowhere help him during his isolated days.
Next it was Neville’s turn.

“I liked Ginny since our fourth year. She seemed a sweet and innocent girl. Luckily she agreed
to go to the Yule Ball with me. I really enjoyed that. Ever since my feelings have remained. I
wanted to ask her out but was too scared. I saw Ginny’s failed relationships with Michael, Dean and
Harry. Finally this year we got close. I got to know her much better. During the Christmas holidays
we wrote to each other. That is when I made up my mind to ask her. When I got the privacy I told
her that I liked her as more than a friend. She didn’t respond immediately but soon nodded and
kissed me,” he said. The others hooted and clapped. Seamus started his story.

“My feelings for Lavender started at the end of sixth year after she broke up with Ron. We have
always been good friends. Unlike Neville talking to her was never a problem for me. Over the past
few weeks I noticed she was flirting with me. She took every opportunity to be with me. She even
ditched Parvati to partner me in Transfiguration class. That is when I thought she also felt the
same way. I took a chance by telling her the truth about my feelings after the class. She hugged me
and said the feeling was mutual. That was it,” Seamus finished. The others again applauded.

It was Harry’s turn next but he requested the Dean to speak first as his story was by far the
longest. Dean agreed.

“Parvati and I haven’t always got along. However after her incident with Ron I really felt bad
for her. She took it very hard. I tried to comfort her whenever I could. In the process we grew
close. We spent a lot of time together discussing various things. I can’t pinpoint the exact moment
I started liking her. But after the Christmas holidays I knew that my feelings were not just
platonic ones. When Seamus told me about him and Lavender I decided to ask her immediately. I was
lucky. She returned the feelings,” said Dean. The usual round of clapping followed.

Finally Harry started his story. He spoke from his heart and described everything. None of the
others knew the details. His voice echoed his love for Hermione. As expected he took the longest
time to finish. When he finished nobody clapped. They just sat staring at Harry. They were deep
into his story. They hadn’t even realized it was over. It was as if the story had hypnotized
them.

“Say something, at least!” said Harry. Everyone blinked.

“I have just one word. ‘Wow!’” said Ron. Seamus, Neville and Dean agreed.

“If we are finished with our drinks, shall we go shopping? We need to get gifts for Valentines
Day,” said Harry. The others nodded. They all dispersed.

Harry was wondering what to get for Hermione. He wanted it to be something special. He thought
about a book but decided against it as she may have already read it. Chocolates and sweets seemed
boring. He had already given her a necklace for Christmas. Not being able to decide on anything he
got bought a sweater for her. It was a special one. To an ordinary person it would look like a
normal sweater but she could see the special message written on it, ‘To Hermione, I love you – now
and forever, Harry’.

Ron had already decided what he wanted to get for Luna. He had got the idea from Hermione’s
Christmas gift to Harry. With some difficulty he had collected about fifteen photos of Luna’s
mother, Natalie. At Hogsmede he bought an album to put the photos. Though this wasn’t an ideal
Valentines Day gift, he was sure that she’d like it.

The others too bought gifts. Seamus and Dean as predicted had bought jewellery. Both Lavender
and Parvati loved to play with clothes, makeup and jewellery. Neville went the academic way. He got
a book of love poems for Ginny. Having had a great evening together the boys returned to Hogwarts
together.

Unfortunately this time Valentines Day didn’t coincide with a Hogsmede weekend. Professor
McGonagall had allowed the seventh years to go out in the night. For the others she had offered
special food of one’s own choice. Their choice had to be given the day before. It would be prepared
by the house elves as usual. On the night of tenth February Hermione spoke to Harry.

“Harry, I was thinking that we should not do anything special for Valentines Day,” she said.
Harry looked up sharply.

“What do you mean Hermione? It’s a special day and I want to make it extra special for you,”
replied Harry. Hermione had expected such a reaction.

“It’s not what you think Harry. I just feel that we shouldn’t put so much importance on one
single day. Both of us love each other. Our love will remain no matter what day it is. For us
everyday should be a Valentines Day. It is not as if you’ll love me more on fourteenth of February
and less on fifteenth. Every moment we spend together is special, so you needn’t worry about making
the day special for me. We can go out on any day. That day most places will be very crowded. So the
best place for us would be home… I mean our quarters,” said Hermione.

“That’s so sweet of you Hermione. As usual you are right. My love for you won’t change for one
day. I wish I could think like you. Such a thought never occurred to me. I was blindly following
the crowd. We can get what you want to our quarters and have a romantic dinner. Even though we
won’t be doing anything extraordinary, I’d like to give you the present I’ve got for you,” replied
Harry.

“I too have something for you. And we needn’t have food of my choice every time. This time
you’ll choose what we eat,” said Hermione.

“As you wish Madam,” dramatized Harry. Hermione stuck out her tongue at him.

On the evening of Valentines Day almost all seventh years were out. Students were very surprised
to see Harry and Hermione not going anywhere. Harry had briefly explained to his friends why he
wasn’t going out. All of them seemed impressed by his explanation. When they were alone in their
quarters Harry held out his present to Hermione. He was astonished to see Hermione was holding an
identical package.

“It can’t be,” said Hermione, noticing Harry’s gift. Even the wrappings were exactly the
same.

“Let’s open them and see,” said Harry. They opened and found same sweaters in both the packs.
The only differences were Harry’s was bigger and their names were interchanged in the enchanted
message.

“How did this happen? This has got to be the biggest coincidence ever,” commented Hermione.

“It just shows how similar our minds are. We think alike,” laughed Harry. “So what do you want
to do before we eat?” he added.

“Let’s ask questions to each other and the answer has to be truthful. It may seem silly but
it’ll help us find out each other’s deepest secrets,” replied Hermione.

“Alright but I’ll question first. Who was your first crush?” asked Harry.

“Gilderoy Lockhart. I thought you already knew that,” replied Hermione.

“Drat! I wasted an opportunity,” said Harry, banging his fist on the table. Hermione
laughed.

“My turn now. If you could change one thing in your life, what would it be?” she asked.

“Well many bad things have happened in my life. I cannot point out which is the worst. I was too
young to sense my parent’s death. Sirius’ death hurt a lot. So did Dumbledore’s. But in their own
ways they played their parts in the war against Voldemort. So I guess they would be what muggles
call martyrs. If I had to change one thing it would be my childhood with the Dursleys. Those were
nightmarish years for me,” said Harry.

“I’m sorry Harry. Please don’t hesitate not to answer if something I say hurts you,” said
Hermione holding his hand.

“It’s okay Hermione. I want to share every part of my life with you. Now I am going to ask. What
is the part about me which you hate or hated the most?” asked Harry.

“It was just before our fifth year. I hated the way you shouted at me and Ron. We were helpless
and the adults wouldn’t tell us anything. I was only trying to make you feel better but you
wouldn’t relent,” replied Hermione.

“I was an ass, wasn’t I? I’m glad I’m not like that anymore,” said Harry.

“Yes, you’ve left that nasty temper behind. Last question - Who was your first kiss? It’s an
easy one because I know it was Cho. I just want to hear it from you” said Hermione. Harry paused
before speaking.

“It wasn’t Cho, it was you,” he said quietly.

“Harry kisses on the cheeks don’t count, incase you are thinking about me kissing you after
fourth year ended,” said Hermione.

“That wasn’t it. While you were petrified during second year Ron and I came to see you. Just as
Ron left, I don’t know what came over me. I’d read in some fairytales that when a guy kisses a girl
in deep sleep, she wakes up. I was hoping the same thing would happen. After all this was the
magical world. So I kissed you but obviously it didn’t work,” said Harry. Tears formed in
Hermione’s eyes.

“Oh Harry, the kiss may not have worked but you are still my Prince Charming. That was so
innocent of you,” said Hermione.

They got their food from the kitchen. Harry had ordered Italian food. They had garlic bread,
Pasta Bolognese and Lamb Lasagna. For desert they had Tiramisu. After finishing they went for their
nightly walk. Ever since they had gotten together this had become a habit for them.

“Thanks to your splendid idea this has been a wonderful day,” said Harry.

“Yes it has been brilliant but as I always say, what matters the most is us being together,”
replied Hermione. Harry kissed her tenderly but pulled apart on hearing a snort.

“Did you hear that?” he asked Hermione. She nodded and looked around.

“Damn! Someone is following us again. I can bet it is the same person. But this time I’m going
to catch him or her. He or she can’t be very far away as we heard the snort,” said Harry
determined. Both of them started searching the area around them.

“I think I saw something move behind that bush,” said Hermione pointing to the bush on her
right. Harry rushed to it.

“Cho!” he said with rage.



15. The Turn towards Evil
-------------------------

**A/N: Again the response was fabulous. Thank you everyone again. Your reviews are a great
source of motivation for me. If there is anything you’d like to see in the story don’t hesitate on
writing it. I’ll try to implement it in the story. For example if you want more description of
Ginny/Neville just write it. Keep up the reviews. Each one of them (good or bad) is greatly
appreciated.**

**After being absent for most of the last chapter, Cho is back with a vengeance here. If you
thought the last chapter was a cliffhanger, wait till you read this one. I’m warning you
beforehand. Also I’d like to warn that this chapter is slightly dark. Everyone may not like it. So
please be tolerant. I’ll asses how long to continue this mood after reading all your responses.
Happy reading!!!**

Chapter Fifteen: The Turn towards Evil

“What exactly do you think you are doing here?” asked Hermione sharply.

“What’s that got to do with you?” said Cho defiantly. She had been following Harry and Hermione
but couldn’t contain the snort which escaped while they were snogging. Though she was busted, she
was going to put up a brave face.

“Don’t talk to Hermione like that,” shouted Harry at Cho.

“You better answer us truthfully or there will be big trouble,” said Hermione seriously.

“What do you think yourselves to be? You may be Head students but I’m here as a trainer, if
you’ve forgotten. That puts me on par with teachers,” replied Cho, pompously.

“Oh really! I’d like you to try and deduct points of us for misbehaving with a ‘teacher’. You
are a teacher after all,” mocked Harry. Cho knew she was caught.

“What do you want?” she asked.

“To know what you were doing here,” said Hermione.

“This place isn’t your private property. Others have equal rights on the grounds of Hogwarts,”
replied Cho.

“Cho we don’t want twisted answers! Clearly you weren’t out here for a night walk. Otherwise you
wouldn’t be hiding behind a bush. Will you tell us why you were following us? It’s the last time
I’m asking! I can’t be clearer than this!” roared Harry, losing his patience.

“Fine! I was following you. But I didn’t know it was you,” replied Cho, trying to think of the
next excuse.

“What the hell do you mean by that? Don’t talk in riddles. Why would you follow unknown people?”
questioned Hermione.

“I saw two students out in the grounds. It was late in the night. I didn’t want them to get
caught by some Professor, so I was going to warn them,” said Cho, not finding a better excuse.

“I haven’t heard anything lamer than that. First question – When did you start sympathizing so
much with two arbitrary students? What do you care if they had got caught? Second question – How
did you plan to warn them from behind a bush? Third question – Why did you not say this when we
first asked you?” asked Harry sarcastically.

“I don’t need to explain everything to you. You are not some auror interviewing a criminal. I
assure you that I had good intentions in mind,” answered Cho.

“Good intentions, my foot! You are just a nasty liar. Would you care to explain which couple you
were trying to warn a couple of weeks ago?” asked Hermione. Cho visibly paled. She had no idea that
Harry and Hermione knew about her previous trailing.

“I don’t know what you are talking about,” she said slightly nervously. Harry sighed in
frustration.

“She won’t tell us anything,” he said to Hermione before turning to Cho. “There is no doubt that
you were following us with bad intentions. Since you won’t tell us, there’s nothing we can do now.
But if you cause any harm to me or Hermione, you’ve had it. After Voldemort dealing with you would
be no problem for me. And yes, our quidditch sessions end here,” said Harry at length.

“You can’t do that Harry! Quidditch is a thoroughly professional matter. You can’t let things
like this get in its way,” protested Cho. Harry groaned. Cho was talking like McGonagall. He knew
that she would go to McGonagall if he refused.

“Alright but take what I said very seriously. We both know that you are up to no good,” warned
Harry. He and Hermione continued walking.

Cho went back to her bedroom quickly. She had been an idiot to snort. Now Harry and Hermione
would suspect her every move. She could not risk following them again. She had to think of other
ways to get to Harry. Strangely she couldn’t dislike him even though he had treated her like shit.
She considered Marietta’s suggestion of tricking Hermione. This was now reaching a point of no
return. So regretfully she decided to use magic to break Harry and Hermione’s relationship.

For the next couple of weeks Cho spent a lot of her time in the library. She was looking for
spells to put Hermione under. For five full days she had no success. With Madam Pince’s permission
she entered the restricted section. Even there she had no success. She was about to give up when a
dusty book caught her eyes. Its title was ‘Dark Magic of Ancient Times’. In normal circumstances
Cho wouldn’t even look towards a book on dark magic but this situation was a desperate one. She had
to win Harry and she’d use dark magic if she needed. With trembling hands she took the book out.
Though she found what she was looking for, the very thought of it sent chills down her spine.

The spell was called the slavery spell. It was used centuries ago to torture people. In modern
time one could call it a mixture of the Imperious and the Cruciatus curse. But its biggest
advantage was that it was not an unforgivable curse. As she read more about it, the more scared she
got. It was a horrible thing to use on someone. She reminded herself that this was her only hope of
getting to Harry.

One person who had noticed Cho’s frequent visits to the library was Luna. When she was free and
Ron wasn’t, she used to do her work in the library. She saw that Cho was invariably there. She had
also seen her heading into the restricted section. Ron had mentioned Cho following Harry and
Hermione. Luna wondered if the two things could be related. One evening while the four of them were
sitting together, she told them what she knew.

“I don’t know what to make of it,” said Hermione after hearing Luna out.

“There can be two ways to look at it. She could only be passing time in the library since she is
scared of Harry’s warning. On the other hand she could be plotting something,” commented Ron.

“Luna, does Cho look relaxed or intense during her time in the library?” asked Harry.

“I haven’t really noticed that much. I’ve not spoken to her or anything like that,” replied
Luna.

“Well, I don’t think its anything serious. As before, all of us will be extremely careful around
her. There is no immediate danger as far as I can see,” said Harry finally. Hermione wasn’t fully
convinced.

“Why would she want to enter the restricted section? She’s not terribly clever or anything like
that,” she said thoughtfully.

“Probably she hasn’t been there ever before and wanted to see what it was like,” joked Ron but
the others didn’t laugh.

“This is no joking matter Ron,” scolded Luna. Ron apologized quietly.

“Let’s just stay out of her way and we’ll be fine,” said Harry. Nobody had anything more to say
on the matter, so they changed the subject.

Cho had finally made up her mind to use the slavery spell on Hermione. It had been a tough
decision. Using dark magic would put her in the same league as the supporters of Voldemort. She
didn’t want herself to be considered as a deatheater but was still willing to try this spell. To
try such a complex spell she needed practice. If something went wrong she would be in big trouble.
The book had said that the spell worked on animals as well as people. She’d copied the relevant
portion as she didn’t want herself to be seen with such a book. She brought some spiders from the
edge of the Forbidden Forest to test her spell. She wasn’t particularly fond of spiders but was
willing to handle them for such a big thing.

“Babsmania! Stop moving,” she said pointing her wand at the spider. She smiled on seeing the
effect on the spider. This was how the spell was supposed to work. She continued practicing for a
few days. To her delight she was getting better at it. She marveled at how fast she had learnt the
spell. Hermione was a gone case now.

Now that everything was there, Cho needed a plan to apply the spell on Hermione. She thought
about this for the next couple of days. She needed Hermione in her bedroom alone. It would be
difficult to get her there. Cho wondered what could be an excuse to make Hermione come to her
bedroom. Hermione and Harry, both suspected her so wouldn’t come to her without good reason. Then
she got a bright idea. She would use Harry to get Hermione. She would tell Hermione that Harry was
seriously injured and in her room. Hermione would come to her room without a word. Harry was one
thing that would make her forget everything else.

Cho also had to make sure that while she was getting Hermione to her bedroom, Harry would not
make an appearance. That was very unlikely to happen but Cho wanted the plan to be foolproof. She
needed to be sure that Harry was somewhere else during that time. The only time she met Harry was
during Quidditch practice. As it happened that would be a perfect place make Harry wait. The jigsaw
was fitting very well in her head.

The day had now arrived for Cho to implement her plan. She had Quidditch practice with Harry in
the afternoon. Both of them arrived on time at the field. They were halfway through the session
when Harry saw Cho getting back to the ground.

“What’s the matter?” he asked, getting down himself.

“Harry I’m so sorry, I’ve to check something in my room. I’ll be back in five minutes. Please
wait here while I go,” replied Cho. Harry looked irritable.

“Can’t we call it a day?” he asked hopefully.

“No Harry. You know how important it is for me. I’ll be right back,” said Cho, leaving the
field. Things had worked well till now. She headed for the Gryffindor common room. Since Harry was
in the field, it was highly unlikely that Hermione would be in the Head’s quarters. She found a
couple of second years and asked them to fetch Hermione from the common room. Within a minute
Hermione was walking towards her.

“What do you want with me Cho? I thought we’d seen enough of each other. Unless you have
anything important to say, I want to get back to my work,” said Hermione. Cho was angered to hear
Hermione address her like this but she remembered to put on the act properly.

“Oh Hermione, it’s horrible. Harry…,” she purposely stopped. Hermione visibly tensed. Just then
she remembered that Harry had gone for practice with Cho. If Cho was here then where was Harry?

“What happened to Harry? Please tell me Cho!” said Hermione frantically.

“He had an accident during practice. I couldn’t find Madam Pomfrey so I took him to my room.
He’s been unconscious but he’s just started calling your name in his sleep. I think you should come
with me,” said Cho speaking very fast. Hermione’s face grew pale. She followed Cho.

“Why didn’t you inform any Professor?” shouted Hermione in a panicked voice, while running
towards Cho’s room. She was panting now.

“This thing happened barely a few minutes ago. I had no time. Don’t shout now, come fast. Harry
needs you,” replied Cho. Her heart was beating very fast. She hoped that things wouldn’t go wrong
at this point. She had already put a silencing charm in her room. She had noticed Hermione was not
carrying a wand. That had made things easier. The moment she and Hermione entered her room, she
whispered a locking charm.

“Where is Harry?” asked Hermione, seeing Cho’s bed empty.

“He’s waiting in the Quidditch field,” replied Cho with a smile.

“Then we should go there. Why did you bring us here? He’ll need our help,” said Hermione trying
to open the door. She had still not realized what was going on. When the door wouldn’t open, she
looked towards Cho. Seeing the look on her face, she deduced she had been tricked.

“For an intelligent bookworm, you get tricked very easily,” laughed Cho.

“What is your problem Cho? This is not funny. What do you expect to get out of me here?” asked
Hermione trying to sound angry. However on feeling the locked door she got a sinking feeling in her
stomach. This wasn’t an ordinary trick. There was more to it.

“By your voice I can tell you are scared. And you have good reason to be. Your relationship with
Harry is over,” said Cho.

“In your dreams! Whatever you do Cho, you can’t separate me from Harry,” replied Hermione
defiantly.

“I had figured out that I could not separate you and Hermione naturally. I couldn’t get him to
show that somebody like him should not date a plane girl like you. So I’ve to use force.
Babsmania!” shouted Cho. The spell hit Hermione on the forehead.

Hermione didn’t feel anything different. Just as the spell had hit her she had felt a strange
sensation passing through her body but now everything was normal. Whatever spell Cho had tried had
failed.

“Don’t look so happy Hermione. The effects of the spell will start once I command you. I’m first
going to explain the details of the spell to you. After that we’ll have a small trial run,” said
Cho.

“As you and Harry suspected I was indeed the person who had been following you two in the
grounds. You would have guessed that I’ve harbored feelings for Harry for the past three years.
When I got here, to my disappointment I saw Harry was not single anymore. However it didn’t end
there for me. I always get what I want. I tried my best to get Harry to myself. Getting McGonagall
to arrange the Quidditch sessions with him was just one of my ploys. I followed you two to try and
find out some useful information. I saw Luna hugging Harry and got a photograph through the
Pensieve to cause tension between you two. But all my plans failed. You two seemed inseparable. As
a last option I had to use this. I’m sorry for this. I’m not a dark wizard but this is the last
chance I’ll have to get to Harry,” explained Cho.

“What are you talking about? Your spell has had no effect on me. I’m just as I was earlier. You
are a pathetic cow who doesn’t know how to back off,” replied Hermione sarcastically.

“Be patient Hermione and don’t talk to me like that! In a couple of minutes you’ll be my slave.
This spell is called the slavery spell. It is a mixture of the Imperious and the Cruciatus curse.
After I command you for the first time, you’ll be under an effect similar to the one of Imperious
Curse. It won’t be as strong though. So you won’t have any difficulty in fighting it. This is where
the pain comes in. If you even dare to disobey my orders you’ll feel pain much worse than the
Cruciatus curse. What is worse is that nobody will be able to see your pain. To them you’ll appear
normal but the pain you feel inside will increase tremendously. If you even think about disobeying
my orders you’ll feel aches inside your body as a warning sign. Only I can take this spell off you
or it has to be some extraordinary happening. That is what the book said. So say goodbye to
freedom,” said Cho grinning devilishly. Hermione got very scared.

“You wouldn’t do this Cho. Come on Cho, I’ve never harmed you. If you want you, I and Harry can
talk this over,” begged Hermione in a desperate voice. She was trembling all over.

“I’m sorry Hermione. To give you an idea of how intense this spell is let’s give it a try. I’m
going to ask you to pick up that book with your left hand. You disobey me and pick it up with your
right hand. See what such a small mistake does to you. I hope you’re ready. From this moment, you
Hermione Granger are my slave. I order you to pick up that book with your left hand,” commanded
Cho.

Hermione felt a cool feeling in her body. It was similar to the Imperious curse which she’d
experienced during fourth year. It was quite weak, so she was able to overcome it. Curious to find
out about this spell, she stretched her right hand towards the book. Pain built in her arm all the
way but it she was able to tolerate it. As her right hand touched the book her body exploded. She
couldn’t scream or shout. Immediately she picked up the book with her left and the pain receded.
Cho smiled at Hermione’s reaction.

“That hurt, didn’t it? I know that though to me you looked normal. This was a very minor
mistake. So you can imagine what it’ll be like when you disobey me completely. A complete defiance
can be fatal or worse. I see that you are in your senses. Do you have anything to say?” asked
Cho.

“Cho I beg you not to put this spell on me. I’m willing to do anything. Please take it off,”
pleaded Hermione. Her body was still stinging from the previous bout of pain.

“What I want you can never give me willingly. That is Harry of course. Can you leave him?” said
Cho. Hermione shook her head silently.

“You see! That is why I have to use this spell. Now I’ll tell you the rules you need to follow
for the rest of your time at Hogwarts. As soon as you are out of this room you’ll breakup with
Harry. If he asks any reasons you’ll be vague. Just say it wasn’t working or something like that.
Avoid him if you want. Now the most important thing. In no way should you let anybody else know
that you are under this spell and I cast it on you. This includes speaking, writing or any other
form of communication. Even if you cry in front of others it gives them the hint. So be really
careful of that. I’d advice you to spend most of your time alone. Every night after Harry is asleep
you are to come to my room. I may have some instructions for you for the next day. Other than this
you can act normal with anyone you meet including Harry. I don’t mind the two of you talking. You
will soon realize why anybody under this spell has never dared to disobey,” finished Cho.

“Cho please!” said Hermione in tears. Cho didn’t even look towards her and walked out of the
room. For about ten minutes Hermione just sat in Cho’s room and cried. A few minutes ago her life
was perfect. Within such a short span it had turned upside down. She didn’t understand how she
would deal with her present situation. How could she leave Harry? She loved him more than life
itself. The thought caused tremendous pain in her body. It wasn’t as bad as the previous bout but
still pretty bad. She couldn’t imagine how she’d tell Harry that they were over.

Still unsure of herself she stepped out of the room. The school which always looked so inviting
now looked gloomy. She saw Ron and Luna passing by. The scene made her cringe. Such moments would
elude her from now on. She was willing to face any pain for Harry but this was too dangerous. Even
if she threw caution to the wind and told him everything, the effects could be disastrous. As Cho
had said, she could die. Other than that she could be impaired for life or become mentally
unstable. That would cause Harry greater pain. She avoided Luna and Ron. Just as she was about to
turn into a corner, she bumped into someone.

“Hi love, where have you been? I’ve been looking for you all over. Bloody Cho kept me waiting in
the field and never came back,” said Harry putting his arms around Hermione. The pain in Hermione’s
body started rising. Reluctantly she got herself free. Her heart went out to Harry, who now had a
confused expression on his face.

“What is it, love?” Harry asked gently sensing something wasn’t right. Hermione paused before
replying.

“Harry I think…,” she couldn’t complete her sentence.



16. Darkness Everywhere
-----------------------

**A/N: I just have one word for all the readers – WOW! You people are amazing! I got twenty
three reviews on the last chapter. Compared to the three or four I was getting at the beginning of
this story, I feel I’ve made great progress. A lot of suggestions from you all have been
implemented in the story so it’s unfair to call this my story. The story is our story. Any
suggestions are welcome. Thanks once again for all the reviews and please continue the
trend.**

**I’d like to share something personal with you all. I watched a movie two days back which
resembles the Harry/Hermione situation tremendously (at least the way it’s expected to be in the
seventh book). In the end the lead pair gets together. I’d like to quote two lines of this (in
terms of Harry and Hermione, of course). I hope these lines do get repeated in the seventh book. So
here goes:-**

**“Harry we are best friends! We don’t love each other,” said Hermione.**

**“Which love are you talking about Hermione? What is love? Is it what you have with Ron and I
have with Ginny? And today when we need them the most, where are they? If that is love then our
friendship is far better than love. At least we are always there for each other and are faithful to
our friendship,” said Harry.**

**This chapter, as suggested by the title is dark. After reading your reviews I’ve decided not
to keep Hermione under the spell for more than two chapters. I’m exploring new territory i.e.
angst, in this chapter. Please be kind. A large portion of the chapter is narration. So some of you
may not like it as much as the other chapters. Sorry for the long Author’s Note and Happy
reading!**

Chapter 16: Darkness Everywhere

“Harry…,” Hermione stopped again.

“What’s the problem Hermione? You can tell me anything, you know that right!” said Harry trying
to comfort her. Hermione again pushed his hand away as he tried to put his arms around her.

“You need to tell me Hermione! I’ll help in any way I can,” urged Harry, slightly worried now.
Hermione’s heart broke seeing the look on his face. They didn’t deserve this. However the pain was
increasing every moment. Soon it would be beyond tolerable limits. For a second she contemplated
telling him everything, no matter how much pain it caused. But she remembered Cho’s warning about
the possible implications of not following her orders. She had to act now.

“HarryIthinkweshouldbreakup,” she said very fast.

“What? I didn’t get you,” said Harry patiently. Hermione couldn’t bear to say the whole thing
again.

“Breakup,” she said shortly. The pain reduced slightly. Harry looked as if he’d been slapped on
the face. A million thoughts came into his mind. He didn’t know what to say first.

“Why?” was all he could say. Hermione kept her tears in check.

“It isn’t working Harry. Please don’t ask many questions. It’s for the best,” she forced herself
to say. Harry still had a disbelieving expression on his face.

“How can you say that? I wouldn’t trade what I have with you for anything. No, this can’t be
happening. Tell me it’s a joke Hermione. Tell me fast!” Harry almost shouted.

“It’s not a joke Harry,” replied Hermione. There was a knot in her throat now.

“So you say you are serious. Okay if that’s what you want I won’t come in your way. But you need
to do something for me before that. Look into my eyes and say you don’t love me,” responded Harry.
He was a hundred percent sure that Hermione wouldn’t be able to do that. Hermione looked up to his
eyes.

“I…,” she started.

“I don’t…,” she couldn’t complete it. Her tear ducts had finally given way and the tears were
flowing freely. Before Harry could notice she turned around and ran. The sight of Harry’s green
eyes had snapped her. Even during the toughest of times his eyes had hope in them. But today the
feelings of betrayal, mental trauma and extreme sadness were etched all over them.

“Hermione wait!” shouted Harry. To his disappointment Hermione had already disappeared. The fact
that Hermione hadn’t said what he had asked her to say, gave him hope. This wasn’t Hermione. He
needed to get the old Hermione back. He would do everything in his power to get her.

Hermione ran back to her bedroom. She put the strongest locking charm she knew on the door. Then
her tears rolled down in buckets. She had just been the most heartless person in the world. She’d
hurt the person who loved her beyond everything, where it hurt the most. She quickly cast a
Silencing charm on the room and screamed out her frustration. She wanted to kill Cho that very
moment. She and Harry had let her off after catching her following them. Yet she did this. How
spiteful could someone be?

“Hermione, please open the door! We need to talk?” begged Harry knocking on the door. Hermione
lifted the Silencing charm before replying.

“I want to be alone. Please don’t knock again,” said Hermione in a shrill voice. Harry knew it
was useless to argue with her. He still couldn’t figure out what had caused this. He’d give
Hermione sometime to herself and then talk to her.

However Harry couldn’t do what he had hoped for. Over the next few days Hermione completely
avoided everyone. She didn’t go for meals with the rest of the school. Instead she had asked Dobby
to get some food to her room. She sat alone in classes. When one classes ended she rushed of to the
next one or to her bedroom. She tried her best not to look at Harry. The constant hurt expressions
in his face broke her apart.

One day while she was rushing off after a class somebody stopped her. It was Luna. She literally
blocked her way.

“Like it or not Hermione, I want to talk to you. If you want we could go to a more private
place,” Luna said. Hermione nodded knowing Luna was determined. They walked into an empty
classroom.

“Why are you behaving like this? Harry loves you. We all are your friends. Any trouble you have,
you can discuss with us. Playing the cat and mouse game will not get you anywhere. If you don’t
want to tell everyone at least tell Harry. If it’s a feminine problem tell me or Ginny. This can’t
go on,” said Luna. Hermione knew that this moment would come sooner or later. The good thing was it
was not with Harry.

“I realized our relationship was going nowhere. I have personal reasons. So I didn’t want to
linger on with it,” replied Hermione without any expression.

“Your experience with the deformed Ron hasn’t taught you anything. You say things weren’t
working with Harry. Then how would you describe ‘things’ with Ron?” asked Luna angrily.

“I don’t know,” replied Hermione blankly. Luna softened a bit.

“Okay for a minute I’m believing you. Even if you want to breakup with Harry, doesn’t he deserve
an explanation? After all you’ve been best friends for almost seven years. He’s hurting like hell.
It’s like he’s alive but not living,” said Luna.

“It may hurt more if I try and speak to him,” said Hermione.

“So obviously you are hurting over this too. I don’t know what you are up to but just remember
one thing. These are two lines from a very famous song – ‘Love can touch us one time; And last for
a lifetime; And never let go till we're gone.’” said Luna before leaving the room. Hermione sat
there for a few minutes totally dazed. As she was walking back to the Head’s quarters she heard
voices in a nearby classroom. The voices belonged to Harry, Ron and Luna.

“She’s not herself,” said Luna. “Her answers are not to the point. She’s being evasive. That’s
not what one associates with Hermione. She’s hurting over the breakup but I can’t imagine what
caused it,” she added.

“At least she spoke to you. Maybe you being a girl helped. She’s avoiding Harry like anything
and not talking to me either. I wonder if her parents had anything against the relationship,”
replied Ron.

“No, that can’t be the case. I got to know Robert and Diana Granger quite well over the
holidays. They aren’t the type of people who’d snatch away their daughter’s happiness. And anyway
Hermione is old enough to make her own decisions,” said Harry, wearily. He’d had very little sleep
the night before.

“There is something we are missing here. Can you find out where Hermione had been before she
broke up with you? That can be a clue,” suggested Ron.

“Where she was has nothing to do with it. Her feelings are what matter. She took the decision to
breakup reluctantly. In the morning she had been perfectly fine. So something must have happened in
the afternoon which caused this state,” said Luna.

“Shall I ask Ginny? She may know something we don’t. Hermione could have told her,” said Ron.
Luna sighed irritably.

“Ron, when will you grow up? If Ginny knew anything wouldn’t she have already told us? And I
don’t think there is anything Hermione would tell Ginny and not tell Harry,” she said. Ron was
about to protest.

“It’s okay. I’ve already spoken to her. She knows nothing. Walked into her and Neville
snogging,” interjected Harry monotonously.

“What the bloody hell! How dare Neville…,” Ron stopped catching Luna’s glare. She was discretely
pointing towards Harry. Ron understood. The last thing Harry needed was a discussion on
snogging.

“I think I’m going to take a nap,” said Harry getting up. Hermione panicked as she heard Harry’s
footsteps coming towards the door. She quickly hid into the nearby broom cupboard. Harry walked out
and sniffed. The scent was familiar. He could recognize it anywhere. He looked towards the broom
cupboard, hearing a slight noise inside it.

“Hermione I know you’re in there. I couldn’t mistake the scent of your shampoo, could I? Clearly
you don’t want to talk to me. Despite the fact that you’ve hurt me so much I’ll respect your wishes
because I love you so much. But I want an explanation later. You owe this much to me, don’t you?”
said Harry in a choked voice before making his way to his bedroom.

Hermione was again reduced to tears. The pain shot up as she was thinking about Harry but at the
moment she didn’t care. She thought about ways in this could end this misery. That made the pain
intolerable. She had to abandon her thoughts. She was suffering from severe depression. Like Harry
she decided to take a nap. Probably a dream would give her some idea.

*“Hi Hermione, so finally you’ve decided to talk to me,” said Harry, glaring at her.*

*“I can explain everything Harry. It wasn’t me. I was forced into what I was doing. I would
never hurt you deliberately. I wanted to tell you that I still love you as much as I did before. I
really mean it Harry. You are the only person in my heart,” replied Hermione, trying to convince
him.*

*“Heart! What do you think my heart is? Do you think you can break it when you want and then
try and fix it expecting everything to be as before? I waited for you enough but I moved on,” said
Harry harshly. Hermione looked at him disbelievingly.*

*“Harry I didn’t want this. I was put under a horrible spell. I’ll tell you more if you give
me a chance. You couldn’t have moved on in such a short time,” said Hermione desperately. Harry was
about to reply but a small boy of about three came and interrupted them.*

*“Daddy, Mummy calling you. We’re getting late,” he said to Harry. Hermione goggled at the
boy. Harry saw her expression and smirked.*

*“Meet my son John Li Potter,” he said shortly to Hermione. Hermione was even more
confused.*

*“Harry you can’t have a son. You’re too young. Is he adopted?” asked Hermione.*

*“Which age are you living in Hermione? I’m twenty five years old and have been married for
the past four years,” said Harry. Hermione gaped at him.*

*“But Harry we broke up just a month ago,” said Hermione confused. Harry was
exasperated.*

*“Hey Sweetheart, can you come down and fix this. I’m sick and tired,” shouted Harry.*

*“Coming darling!” replied a feminine voice. What Hermione saw next petrified her. Cho Chang
was walking down the stairs with John in her arms. Harry went upstairs without even looking at
Hermione. Cho sent John to his playroom.*

*“I hope you liked my house,” said Cho smiling at her.*

*“What’s going on Cho? You’d better tell me,” urged Hermione.*

*“I put you under the Slavery spell eight years ago. You remained obedient till yesterday.
Unfortunately you tried to tell the Ministry about it. The pain caused you to lose sense of time. I
took off the spell after that. For your information you are twenty six,” replied Cho
shortly.*

*“I’m not twenty six! I’m eighteen!” shouted Hermione.*

*“It’s useless talking to you. You’ve totally lost it. Its better you get going,” said Cho
calmly.*

*“I’m not going anywhere before telling Harry the truth,” replied Hermione defiantly.*

*“I’m sorry but you have to,” said Cho and dragged Hermione out. Since she was much stronger
Hermione’s protests didn’t bother her. She shut the door on Hermione’s face. Hermione was staring
at the door blankly when it opened again to reveal Cho.*

*“I’d told you that I’d get Harry. Look where I am and where you are,” said Cho grinning
devilishly. She slammed the door back.*

“NO!” screamed Hermione getting up suddenly. She sighed in relief realizing it had all been a
dream.

That night after Harry was asleep Hermione crept out of her bed to visit Cho. She was hoping
that Cho would be asleep but that wasn’t the case.

“Come in Hermione. I hope you are doing well,” said Cho in an evil voice. Hermione didn’t answer
initially. She had planned to talk to Cho one last time about taking off the spell.

“Cho please take the spell off. It’s not helping anybody,” she said lamely.

“You’re wrong. It’ll help me to get Harry,” replied Cho.

“Harry is our common concern. If you’ve seen him lately you would have noticed how much he’s
hurting over this. If not for me, taking off the spell will help him a great deal. You can talk
things over with us. As for me I promise not to tell about this to anybody. I’m willing to do that
if it helps Harry,” pleaded Hermione.

“I’m sorry but I can’t trust you. Harry’s current state of mind is just a passing phase. I’m
just waiting for it to pass before I make my move. He’ll forget about you very soon,” said Cho.

“What do plan to achieve Cho? Harry will not see anything in you now or ever in the future! How
do you plan to ‘get’ him,” shouted Hermione.

“Don’t shout like that Hermione. You are my slave after all. All I need to do with Harry is get
him in bed. My abilities with males in bed are world famous. He wouldn’t be able to resist me after
that,” said Cho. Hermione clenched her fist.

“You obnoxious bitch! I’m going to kill you,” said Hermione, taking her wand out.

“Put that back Hermione. Killing me would be like killing yourself. Unless I take the spell off
you remain like this. If I die you remain like this for the rest of your life. But thanks for
warning me. As my next command I forbid you to perform any spell on me,” said Cho calmly. Hermione
huffed.

“How will you get Harry in bed?” she asked out of curiosity.

“Will try the normal way first and if it fails I’ll look for a spell. You know its nice talking
to someone about these things. Since you are under my control I know you won’t tell this to
anybody,” replied Cho. Hermione felt sick. She took leave of Cho.

Another week passed. Though Harry had given Hermione plenty of time, she hadn’t spoken to him.
So Harry decided to take matters into his own hands. One morning he woke up early and waited in
their common room. He was hoping to catch Hermione when she came out of her bedroom.

“Will you please give me a few minutes of your time?” asked Harry when Hermione walked out.
Hermione nodded reluctantly. She didn’t want to have this conversation with Harry but had no choice
at the moment. They sat down on the sofa.

“Why are we acting like this towards each other? Why did I have to be so formal to get your
attention? Forget about our relationship but we have seven years of friendship behind us. What
crime did I commit to lose you?” Harry asked almost begging her to give a proper reply.

“You haven’t done anything wrong Harry. This has nothing to do with you. Please trust me. It is
best the way it is,” replied Hermione.

“No it’s not the best! I’m hurting like anything. I can’t eat sleep. I can’t eat. You are
haunting me in my dreams. I can’t do anything. I’ve become a bloody invalid! And if I’m right, the
same holds for you,” shouted Harry. Hermione could feel her tears in her eyes. Pain started to take
her over. She couldn’t cry in front of him.

“Excuse me, Harry,” she said quickly and ran back to her bedroom.

Harry could not attend any classes that day. The sight of Hermione running away from him broke
the last bit of resolve in him. He had given her everything. He had always stood by her. Even after
she had ditched him he had given her time. Like any other guy in his position he could have
shouted, screamed, abused etc. But his love for her had stopped him. He felt deeply that in her
heart she still loved him. Then why was she behaving like this? It was the first time they had
spoken properly after the breakup and everything had changed in that time. Hermione seemed to be a
different person. Her self confidence was missing. The gleam in her eyes was not there. She spoke
in short sentences instead of her usual explanatory self. Yet he couldn’t stop loving her.

Harry spent the whole day locked in his room. The brief conversation with Hermione played again
and again in his head. Sometimes he cried. He didn’t think that he’d have to face such an emotional
turmoil after Voldemort was gone. He was trying to figure out the cause for all this but his mind
wouldn’t work properly. He had spoken to many of the Gryffindor’s about anything unusual that they
had noticed about Hermione. None of them could say anything. His state was such that he couldn’t
face anybody. He ignored the owls sent by Ron and Luna, asking him to join them for tea. He hadn’t
eaten anything the whole day. He decided that after everyone was asleep he’d sneak to the kitchen
for a bite.

Hermione’s situation wasn’t much better. She thought attending classes would keep her mind off
Harry. She was wrong. She was so distracted that she got hauled up by Professor Longbottom and
Professor Tonks. As soon as classes ended she rushed to her bedroom. All the bottled up emotions
came out. She screamed aloud, shed tears and even threw articles around her room. Since she was
thinking about Harry and how to resurrect their relationship, it was causing her a lot of pain. The
pain was more than ever before. She was disobeying Cho. Soon it was beyond her limits and she
passed out. It wasn’t until late at night that she regained consciousness. The pain was not there
as her thoughts were absent during unconsciousness. It was almost time for her to go to Cho.

Harry was under his invisibility cloak. He was quietly making his way to the kitchen. He heard
noises in Hermione’s room and was surprised that she was still awake. He debated whether to try
again at getting something out of her but decided against it. Somebody was waiting for him in the
kitchen.

“I knew you’d come here,” said Ron.

“Hi Ron,” said Harry weekly.

“I know your state but do you think staying locked up would help you?” asked Ron.

“You don’t know what happened today. I finally spoke to her and she ran away in the middle. I
couldn’t take that,” replied Harry.

“All this is very unlike Hermione. I can’t imagine what has got into her. It’s really sad. But
please don’t act like you did today. Me, Luna and Ginny were quite worried,” said Ron.

“Thanks for the support Ron,” said Harry with a small smile.

“That’s okay. We’ll always be there for you. If only we could figure out Hermione. I’ve already
asked Kreacher to prepare food for you. It should be ready by now. Eat properly. You need your
strength,” said Ron before going away. Harry was glad that he had such good friends. He ate in
silence.

When he got back after finishing his meal he saw Hermione’s bedroom door was half ajar. This
time he couldn’t help his curiosity. He made his way to her room. To his amazement it was empty. He
waited in the common room for her to get back. As he was under the invisibility cloak, she wouldn’t
see him. After fifteen minutes Hermione came back. Harry deduced that she may have gone for a night
walk alone.

This incident kept ringing in Harry’s head throughout the next day. In the night he couldn’t
sleep. At about the same time as the previous night he got out of bed. Again Hermione was not in
her room. He waited till she came back but couldn’t find the resolve to talk to her. This trend
continued for three more days. Now Harry was getting slightly suspicious. Night walks usually
didn’t have a fixed time. For a moment he wondered if Hermione was seeing someone else. But knowing
Hermione as well as he did he dismissed the thought.

On the sixth night when the same thing happened, Harry decided to investigate. He looked around
the school for Hermione. He checked the grounds where Hermione usually walked. She wasn’t there. He
checked the astronomy tower without luck. Something fishy was going on. Hermione wasn’t back when
he returned to their common room. Today he was going to ask her. When Hermione came in she stared
at Harry, who was sitting on the sofa.

“Care to sit down,” Harry asked trying to sound casual. Hermione sat down opposite him.

“Where do you go every night?” questioned Harry coming straight to the point. Hermione almost
smiled with joy. Harry knew something was on. He would do his best to get them back together. After
a long time she felt happy. Bless Harry for figuring this out. Then a bright idea came to her head.
All Harry needed to do to find the answer was to check his Marauderer’s map. Seeing her with Cho
every night would definitely put him on the right track. However because of the spell she couldn’t
tell him this. She hoped that the idea would strike him. It was their only way out.

“You didn’t answer me,” said Harry, breaking her flow of thoughts. She had to lie at the
moment.

“I was out for a walk in the grounds,” replied Hermione. Harry knew that she wasn’t telling the
truth. He had checked the grounds thoroughly. It hurt him tremendously to realize Hermione was
lying to him. What could she be hiding? He couldn’t take it anymore. He looked heavenwards.

“Dear God …”



17. Busted!
-----------

**A/N: The reviews keep getting more and more. Thank you readers! You are amazing. The part of
the story about Cho has been very popular. I seem to have generated the hatred for Cho, which I was
looking for. Harry and Hermione have been having a bad time of late. Things are bond to improve for
them soon… Please keep up the response. It is deeply appreciated.**

**This chapter continues with Cho’s evil deeds and ends with… you’ll see. I know my last three
chapters have been cliffhangers but I couldn’t help making it four in a row. I promise this will be
the last cliffie, at least for a while. This one isn’t a bad cliffie but I warned you anyway. Happy
reading and a belated Happy Valentines Day!**

Chapter Seventeen: Busted!

“Dear God, please help me out! Here is the girl I love more than life itself. She dumps me
without any reason and instead of hating her, I love her even more. What do you call this? Do I
really love her this much or am I being an idiot not being able to accept the truth? As far as I
can make out, the first is true. I can’t stop loving her. My heart says that she loves me too. More
than ever before. Then why is she acting like this? What did I or anybody else do to make her lose
her personality? She is not like this. On top of everything she is lying to me. I checked every
inch of the grounds but she was not there. Then why is she saying she was in the grounds? This
isn’t fair. I deserve the truth, don’t I? If she has any problem, I’m always there for her. I want
Hermione Granger back. Even if she can’t be mine, I want her to be herself. I want that smile back.
I want the talkative nature back. And if possible I want what we shared back. Please help me!”
prayed Harry.

Hermione was standing right next to him. Though she was fighting tears, at the moment she was
rather happy. She felt hopeful after a long time. Harry knew that she was out every night and also
that she wasn’t telling truths. To find out the truths all he needed to do was to follow her.
Knowing him she felt he wouldn’t do that. He hated to invade on people’s privacy. The only way was
to check the Marauderer’s map. If only she could give him a hint. As her tears threatened to leak
she quickly made her way back to her room. The tears now leaked out freely. Harry’s prayer ran
through her head. Each word was like a knife through her chest. The only consolation was that he
still loved her. Her mental pain at the moment exceeded the physical pain caused by the slavery
spell. She again wondered if she should just throw caution to the wind but her dream forced her to
abandon the thoughts.

Next morning Luna told Harry something very interesting.

“You know Harry, Brian Lara the sixth year Ravenclaw prefect saw Hermione in the corridors late
last night. He wasn’t very sure but she seemed to be walking towards Cho Chang’s room. I don’t know
what to make of this but I thought you should know,” she said. Harry pondered.

“I don’t trust Cho. Ever since I caught her following me and Hermione, I’ve been suspicious of
her. However Hermione being near her room is by no stretch a good enough reason to accuse her. Had
it been anybody else I wouldn’t even have thought about it. But with Cho you never know,” said
Harry.

“So what will you do about it?” asked Ron.

“I think I’ll go and have a stern talk with her,” said Harry getting up. Ron and Luna watched as
he was walking away.

“He’s handling it worse than I expected,” commented Ron.

“Come on Ron! Harry and Hermione fitted like pieces of a jigsaw puzzle. How do you expect him to
act when Hermione suddenly announces that it wasn’t working? I’m surprised that he hasn’t gone
insane,” replied Luna.

“I want to kill Hermione but I can’t help feeling something is wrong with her. The part about
her sneaking out every night is strange,” said Ron.

“No, what we are seeing now is not Hermione. I just hope she can get out of this mess and be
with Harry again,” said Luna. Ron held her tightly.

“I may sound horrible but I’m glad that this hasn’t happened to us. I don’t know what I’d do
without you,” said Ron, pulling her closer.

“You won’t be without me. I’d never leave you. You are all that I have wanted,” said Luna
resting her head on Ron’s shoulder. Ron kissed her softly.

“I’ve missed that so much,” moaned Luna.

“We haven’t had much time to ourselves lately. With Harry in such a state, we’ve had to be with
him. I don’t grudge him but I too have missed it,” replied Ron, pulling away. They sat together
till it was time for them to leave for classes.

Harry knocked on Cho’s door. When Cho saw Harry at her door her heart lifted. Was Harry already
over Hermione? She hadn’t expected things to work out so fast.

“Can I sit and have a talk with you?” asked Harry, trying to remain polite. Cho’s hopes were
raised even further. She was almost jumping with glee.

“Sure Harry,” said Cho in anticipation. “How come you’re here so soon?” she added. Harry gave
her a confused look.

“I’m here for a personal reason. As you would know, Hermione and I have broken up,” said Harry.
He was trying to make this a formal issue. Cho, on hearing the first sentence was amazed. Things
were going exactly as she’d wanted.

“I want to know if you’ve got anything to do with that,” continued Harry. Cho was shocked. How
could Harry have known this? She recovered quickly.

“What makes you think that Harry? I’ve never tried to come between you and Hermione. You know
that very well,” replied Cho, offended.

“Then what does Hermione do out of bed every night? And what was she doing near your room last
night?” pressed Harry. Cho was now desperate. Harry couldn’t know all this.

“Harry, Hermione is the Head Girl. She can move around anywhere in the school, whenever she
wishes. As for yesterday, I can assure you that she never came into my room. I have absolutely no
contact with her!” said Cho in a panicked voice.

“No need to get hyper. I was only checking. I need to find this out,” said Harry and left the
room. Cho stared after him. It was only a matter of time before he would be hers. However at the
moment she needed to control the damage. She sent an owl to Hermione asking her to stop her nightly
visits and start coming at five in the morning.

Hermione was sleeping soundly, when intense pain woke her up. She noticed that it was five past
five. Remembering Cho’s message, she drowsily got dressed. When she knocked on Cho’s door, there
was no reply. Hoping that Cho would be asleep she turned back but to her disappointment Cho opened
the door.

“I guess the pain woke you up,” said Cho. Hermione briefly nodded.

“Good spell, isn’t it? If you’d let Harry be, you wouldn’t have had to face its effects,”
smirked Cho. Hermione looked away.

“Any specific instruction today,” asked Hermione. She was almost resigned to her fate now.

“No but I want to discuss a few things with you,” replied Cho.

“Can’t wait,” replied Hermione sarcastically. Cho acted as if she hadn’t heard.

“Today I’m about to tell you about my future plans with you and with Harry. I plan to make my
move on Harry today or tomorrow. If I don’t succeed I’ll start looking for spells. The book on Dark
Magic is very helpful. I’m sure to find something there. The more important matter is you. We’ll
continue this way till school ends. After that you’ll have to leave the country and never return
again. I think that’ll be the easiest way for both you and me. You won’t be getting in my way and
being away will keep your mind off Harry. That’ll make your life pain free unlike now. We won’t
meet again. But remember, the spell remains active till you die. So don’t even think of trying
anything silly,” explained Cho. Hermione was horrified.

“You can’t do that Cho. Separating me from Harry is one thing but this is my home. My parents
and all my friends are here. I can’t leave the country!” exclaimed Hermione.

“I’m the final authority. I’ve never said that your parents can’t visit you. They can come to
you as often they want, even stay with you. As for your friends, I’ve noticed you hardly have any
friends, now that you aren’t associated with Harry. People befriended you only to get close to
Harry. On your own you are nothing,” said Cho. Hermione was enraged.

“Cho, why are you doing this? I’ve never caused any harm to you. If you want Harry, why don’t
you get him like a man? The method you are applying is extremely cowardly,” said Hermione.

“I’m no man,” replied Cho. There was no getting around it. Hermione sighed.

“Let me tell you one thing Cho! You will never get Harry! He already suspects something is wrong
with me. Before long, he’ll discover everything about you and we’ll be back together. You’ve
underestimated the power of love. Wherever evil is, the good always lies two steps ahead. Let’s see
who leaves the country this summer,” shouted Hermione before marching out of Cho’s room.

“Keep dreaming, Hermione Granger! Keep dreaming!” whispered Cho with a smile.

In the afternoon Cho was having her quidditch session with Harry. Harry felt bad about accusing
Cho the previous day. After the session was over, Harry called out Cho.

“I’m sorry about my outburst yesterday. I shouldn’t have accused you without proper evidence,”
he said, as they were walking back from the Quidditch pitch. Cho knew her chance has arrived. Now
she could move in on Harry. Harry had provided her with the perfect opening.

“It’s okay Harry. I know that you didn’t mean it. I sympathize with the position you’re in. It
must have bean very hard for you. I mean your breakup with Hermione. You two seemed to be getting
along so well. I wonder why Hermione left you. If you ever need any help, feel free to ask me.
You’ve helped me a lot,” said Cho comfortingly.

“That’s kind of you, Cho. I’m sure Hermione and I will be able to sort out our problems soon,”
replied Harry. He was surprised to see such a change in Cho. Ever since he had caught her following
him and Hermione, she had transformed for the better. She had kept out of his way. She had been
more flexible as far as the Quidditch sessions were concerned. Most importantly, she hadn’t jumped
onto him now that he was single. Perhaps she could be a nice person if she wanted.

Cho thought of taking a chance by slipping his hands into hers but decided not to rush things.
By Harry’s voice she knew that his attitude towards her was no longer hostile. If things worked out
she could get him to bed very soon. All it needed was an invitation to her room and a couple of
drinks.

“You’ve been a good friend Harry. I know we’ve had our sour moments but we’ve worked our way
through it. It’s been a pleasure working with you. Let’s forget the past and start over,” she said
extending her hand,

Though Harry had noticed Cho’s changes he wasn’t sure about taking Cho’s hand of friendship. He
didn’t want to hurt her, so he briefly shook it. Cho smiled at him.

This entire scene was witnessed by Hermione who was sitting with her books in the grounds. She
couldn’t hear what was being said but understood it as Cho’s move. Despite what she saw she had
complete faith in Harry. She knew that he wouldn’t fall into Cho’s trap. Still she was determined
to protect him from Cho. Her hate for Cho increased. As did her love for Harry. She admired the way
he was handling the situation, he’d been unfairly put into. She desperately wanted to tell him what
was going on. A warm sensation passed through her body.

Harry entered the Head’s quarters. Immediately his mind filled with Hermione’s memories. The
Quidditch session had momentarily made him forget the reality. He loved flying but his love for
Hermione was limitless. He saw the sofa in which he and Hermione had gotten cozy so many times. He
sat down on that sofa and watched the spot where he’d told her about his feelings. His heart
swelled with the love he felt for her.

Hermione entered the Head’s quarters and saw Harry sitting on the sofa. Her mind told her to
ignore him and proceed to her bedroom. But something stopped her. Her legs carried her next to him.
She tentatively sat down. His eyes were closed. She kept watching him for sometime. She loved the
way his lips parted, when he was asleep. She gently held his hand. To her surprise all this hadn’t
caused any pain to her.

Feeling a touch on his hand, Harry woke up. He didn’t open his eyes though. He knew that touch
like the back of his hand. There was just one person other than him allowed inside the Head’s
quarters. Fearing it was a dream he opened his eyes. Hermione was sitting next to him.

“Is it really you, Hermione? Please don’t let this be a dream,” said Harry softly. Hermione
didn’t reply. She gently moved her head and placed her lips on Harry’s. Another warm sensation
passed through her body.

“I DID IT! I DID IT!” shouted Hermione, jumping in the common room. Harry was flabbergasted. One
moment Hermione was kissing him and now she was jumping like a maniac.

“What’s going on Hermione? I don’t understand any of this,” asked Harry. Hermione, who was
jumping around suddenly stopped. Her expressions changed completely. She seemed overwhelmed. Tears
were rolling down her cheeks.

“We did it Harry! It’s over! Finally it’s over. I don’t know how it happened. I’m still in
shock. Please tell me this isn’t another dream,” said Hermione.

“If I remember correctly, I was the one who was sleeping. You held my hand and then…,” he
couldn’t complete as Hermione threw herself on him and kissed him fiercely. Harry kissed her back
with passion. He had missed this over the past month.

“If you are okay, can you tell me what happened? I’m going to kill the person responsible for
this,” said Harry.

“It’s a very long story. Just recapping it will torture me but I know it’s important,” started
Hermione. She told Harry everything. His face kept growing grimmer till it was red with anger. He
stood up.

“Where are you going?” asked Hermione.

“To beat Cho to death,” said Harry angrily.

“Please don’t do that Harry. It’ll only cause trouble for you. I have a better idea than that. I
want you near me now. I’ve missed you so much,” pleaded Hermione. Harry couldn’t refuse that.
Hermione explained her plan to frame Cho. Harry had to admire her intelligence. She had made sure
Cho would be caught red handed.

“I’m so glad you’re with me again,” said Harry pulling Hermione close.

“I was never away Harry. You were always there in my heart. Though it caused me pain I couldn’t
stop thinking about you,” replied Hermione. Both of them stayed in through the evening. Harry
wanted to tell Ron that all was fine but didn’t want to leave Hermione even for a second. Soon it
was time for bed.

“I don’t want you to be alone. Sleep with me tonight,” said Harry, hoping for a positive
response.

“I’m not sure Harry. Do you think we’ll be able to control ourselves?” asked Hermione
uncertainly.

“I would never do anything against your wishes Hermione. I thought you knew that. I just want
you safe,” replied Harry.

“Oh Harry! You’re perfect. Nobody could have been sweeter than you,” said Hermione hugging him.
Harry’s bed was large enough for both of them. They held each other as they slept.

Harry woke up Hermione at quarter to five. It was time to implement their plan. He had already
sent owls to McGonagall and Lupin the previous night. He hoped that they would manage to do what
he’d said. He put the invisibility cloak around him. The two of them walked to Cho’s room. Hermione
knocked.

“Hi Hermione,” said Cho dryly, as she opened the door. Harry quietly slipped in behind
Hermione.

“Cho I have a problem. I tried to write a letter to Harry yesterday, telling everything about
you. It was painful until one moment when everything went blank. When I woke up I seemed to have
lost a few memories about recent times. You’ve put me under some spell, haven’t you?” asked
Hermione.

“I thought you would be sensible not to test this spell. The effects could have been much worse.
Yes I put you under the slavery spell. You will have to do what I order or else you’ll feel intense
pain. I’d ordered you to breakup with Harry and to forget any romantic feelings you have for him.
You cannot get involved with his love life. Also you aren’t allowed to tell about this to anybody.
Is that enough?” said Cho.

“Cho that’s horrible. You can’t do that to me! Why would you want to do such a thing? It won’t
help you in any way,” dramatized Hermione.

“The attempt has really pooped you. I want Harry. I need him as my boyfriend to get ahead in my
job. You were the only obstacle in my way. Since the two of you wouldn’t budge, I used this spell.
I found it in a book of Dark Magic in the restricted section of the library. I’ve made great
progress. Harry has no idea what I’m doing. He was quite friendly with me yesterday. I think the
‘wine and getting him to bed’ plan will be a reality very soon,” said Cho pompously.

“You’re just a coward. You won’t get anything out of this. I love Harry and there is no power
greater than love,” shouted Hermione.

“Hermione just because I’m being lenient doesn’t mean you can shout at me when you want. This
spell is meant to torture. I think you should get some of it. Take this knife… What did you just
say about Harry?” said Cho realizing what Hermione had said so nonchalantly.

“I said I love Harry. Thought your ears were in a better condition than that,” replied Hermione
with a smile.

“No it can’t be! You must have been joking. Say it again,” said Cho, panicking.

“I LOVE HARRY,” shouted Hermione at the top of her voice. Cho looked stricken. She searched for
her wand.

“And I LOVE HERMIONE,” said Harry pulling off the invisibility cloak. Cho barely had time to
react before another stern voice interrupted her.

“We thought you were fooling Potter but I see it is deadly serious,” said Professor McGonagall,
removing the Disillusionment Charm. Professor Lupin followed the act.

“Both of us were surprised when you had asked us to be in Miss Chang’s room under the
Disillusionment Charm at five in the morning. We had no idea such crimes were going on in the
school. All of you please sit down. We have a lot to discuss. Miss Chang, don’t try anything funny.
There are four highly capable wizards in the room. Anyway Harry has your wand,” said Lupin.

Everybody sat in the room. Hermione again narrated the entire story. Cho was busted beyond
doubt. McGonagall was particularly interested in the story.

“Miss Chang will be handed over to the Ministry. She’ll have to face a criminal hearing at the
very least. The exact nature of her punishment will be known after that. If it was left to me I
would recommend lifetime imprisonment at Azkaban. Such matters cannot be dealt within the school.
On a positive side I’m very eager to know exactly how the spell broke. Miss Granger could you
please describe the events from the time you saw Mr. Potter and Miss Chang talking?” said
McGonagall. Hermione did as she was told. McGonagall smiled knowingly.

“Do you have any idea of what caused the spell to break?” she asked.

“It broke when we kissed,” replied Harry shyly.

“I’m disappointed at that answer. If life was a fairytale there would have been no troubles.
I’ll tell you. When Hermione saw Miss Chang implementing her plan to get you, she must have felt
worried. Any other person in her place would have lost her mind. But she didn’t because she trusted
you. She knew you would never fall for Miss Chang’s disgusting tricks. That is love at its purest
form. The wave of heat signaled the beginning of the end. When you met in the common room both of
you were thinking about each other. The love you felt broke the spell completely. Never in history
has this spell been broken. Your love is dangerously strong. Its capacity in times to come will be
legendary,” explained McGonagall. Both Harry and Hermione blushed. Lupin and McGonagall escorted
Cho out after a quick goodbye.

The rest of the school got to know about Cho’s deeds that morning. Ron was willing to strangle
her. Hermione received sympathies from everybody. She was so glad that things were as they should
have been. Nothing could make the day better.

In the night Harry and Hermione were alone in their common room. Harry was fidgeting around
quite a bit. Hermione noticed this and grew curious.

“What’s up with you?” she asked.

“Hermione I wanted to talk to you about something,” said Harry. Hermione put down the book she
was reading, knowing that he wanted to say something important.

“I have been thinking about this for a long time. Unfortunately our ‘breakup’ spoiled it for me.
Do you remember the time we were discussing about not celebrating Valentines Day in a special way?
Do you remember what you said you’d rather do?” asked Harry.

“I said I’d rather be with you here instead of going to some crowded place,” replied Hermione
simply.

“What was the exact word you used for ‘here’?” asked Harry. Hermione tried to think but couldn’t
remember. She shook her head. Harry took a deep breath.

“You said you’d rather be at home. I couldn’t stop thinking about that. I always want to give
you what you want. I want to give you a home. We’ll be out of school in a few months. It will be
difficult to be the way we are now. Weekly meetings are not the same as staying together everyday.
Our relationship in romantic terms has been quite short but we have seven years of friendship
behind us…” Harry stopped losing his nerve.

“Please go on Harry,” encouraged Hermione. She was tense with anticipation. Her excitement was
evident in her voice. Harry regained his confidence.

“Hermione, if you want that is, will you move in with me?” asked Harry.



18. Home Sweet Home
-------------------

**A/N: Here is another chapter for you and this time it is not a cliffie! Enough of cliffies
for the moment. From this chapter onwards the story will mainly revolve around Harry and Hermione
(except some parts of the next chapter). If you don’t want that to happen and want to see other
characters too, please let me know in your reviews. I’ll change the story accordingly.**

**Again I thank all the reviewers. The last few chapters have provided a huge amount of
response. I wonder if the cliffies have anything to do with that. I’ll figure out after this
chapter. Life has been very busy, so I’ve not been able to answer the last few reviews. I apologize
for that and promise to answer them by tomorrow. Please keep the reviews coming. Happy
reading!**

Chapter Eighteen: Home Sweet Home

Hermione’s eyes brightened on Harry’s question. “Of course, Harry! That’s a great idea,” she
said hugging him tightly. As Harry held her, he wondered how quickly time could change. Just
sometime ago she wasn’t talking to him. Now they were about to start a new life together.

“I’m so glad Hermione. I couldn’t stay a day a without you. Even during the forced breakup, your
sight kept me sane. We have a lot of planning to do. Is it a good time now?” asked Harry.

“I’m always game! I can’t believe this. This is so exciting. We are going to be living together.
When did you plan this? I’d thought about it before. Like you said even I can’t do a day without
you. I love you so much Harry!” said Hermione. Harry softly kissed her.

“Okay, we have our Easter holidays soon. We’ll look for our home at that time. We’ll book a room
at Leaky Cauldron and operate from there. What do you say to that?” asked Harry.

“That’s fine but I need to spend a couple of days with my parents before that. Of course you’ll
have to come with me,” replied Hermione.

“Hermione, I’ve already intruded during the summer holidays. You’ll want to spend some time with
your parents alone. So wouldn’t it be better if I stayed at Hogwarts during that time?” questioned
Harry.

“Don’t you dare Harry! I’m not giving the news of our moving in to my parents alone. You’ll have
to be with me as you are involved too. And anyway you wouldn’t be able to live two days without
me,” Hermione said with a sly grin.

“You know my weaknesses. But I hadn’t thought about telling your parents. I hope they take it
well. You’re their baby girl after all,” said Harry.

“My parents have always been supportive of me. I don’t expect this time to be any different.
They may have some difficulty in accepting the fact that I’ve grown up but they’ll be okay,”
replied Hermione.

The Easter holidays were still some way off and they had their second pre-NEWTs coming up. So
the focus over the next few days was on studies. Harry didn’t let Hermione’s sight distract him
like the previous time. However there was another distraction before the tests began. They had to
attend Cho’s hearing at the ministry.

The hearing was going as was expected. Hermione, Harry, McGonagall and Madam Pince presented
their cases. Cho had no defense. She looked defeated. She made no attempt to question the charges
against her. The Ministry official, Graeme Smith, who was judging the case called for a short break
before announcing the final judgment.

Harry and Hermione were having a snack at the cafeteria when somebody interrupted them. Harry
looked at her coldly as she spoke. It was Marietta.

“Can I have a word with alone, Er… Potter,” she said nervously.

“Whatever you have to say, you can say here,” replied Harry nervously. Marietta took a seat.

“I understand the torture Cho put you through but I’m begging you for mercy. I’ve known Cho
since childhood and she’s not a bad person. The only reason she did this was because she loves you
Harry,” said Marietta.

“Don’t you dare use that word between me and Cho! People like you and Cho don’t know what love
is. To you, guys are just a mode to climb up the ladder. I don’t want to hear any more about this,”
shouted Harry.

“Please Harry! I’m begging you. The case is registered under Granger’s name as she was the
victim. So if she withdraws the charges Cho will be free. I’ve checked this with the authorities.
Both of us will forever be indebted to you two,” pleaded Marietta. Hermione spoke before Harry
could answer.

“Marietta, what Cho did was equivalent to crimes of a deatheater. If we don’t press the charges,
we’ll be encouraging the Dark side. Other people would be inclined to do what Cho did. As
responsible citizens we are not willing to let that happen. So it’s final. Cho is guilty and will
face her punishment,” she said sternly. Marietta kept sitting hoping for them to change their
minds.

“If you’ve finished you can leave!” said Harry rudely. Marietta quietly got up and walked away.
As predicted by McGonagall, Cho was sentenced to Azkaban for life. Harry and Hermione couldn’t have
been happier with the verdict.

The pre-NEWTs passed well and it was time for the Easter holidays. For the first time Harry was
going to spend Easter away from Hogwarts. Hermione had written to her parents informing that she
and Harry would be staying for two days. She hadn’t mentioned why they weren’t staying longer. They
said goodbye to Ron, Luna and the other Gryffindor’s before setting out.

“We’re so glad to have you again Harry,” said Diana Granger welcoming Harry when the two of them
arrived.

“It’s a pleasure Dr. Granger. Thank you so much for your hospitality,” replied Harry.

“Mum, you haven’t said a word to me. I hope Harry hasn’t taken my place,” said Hermione,
pretending to be offended.

“Nobody can take your place sweetheart. I thought you knew that,” said Diana, kissing Hermione
on the cheek.

“Diana, did you realize you were just talking to our daughter’s boyfriend,” said Robert coming
into the room.

“Oh I’d almost forgotten! I’m seeing you two after so long, so I didn’t take what had happened
in between into consideration. I’m sure you make a superb couple. My congratulations to both of
you, though it has been quite some time,” said Diana.

“Same goes for me! Looking at the two of you reminds me of my teenage years with Diana. I hope
you are looking after my daughter Harry,” said Robert. Both Harry and Hermione were blushing
madly.

“Yes Dr. Granger, she means a lot to me,” replied Harry shyly. They spent a relaxing day at
Hermione’s house. After dinner all of them were sitting down in the living room. It was time for
them to reveal their future plans. Harry felt nervous. He didn’t know what the reaction of
Hermione’s parents would be. Robert provided them with a perfect opening.

“So Hermione, what are your plans after you graduate from Hogwarts,” asked Robert.

“I plan to get into academics. I’ll get into EIWE that is the English Institute of Wizarding
Education. I’ll get my degree from there. Maybe after that I’ll spend time in research till I get a
teaching job at Hogwarts,” replied Hermione.

“So where are you planning to stay? We know that you’d like to get your own place but we’d love
you to continue staying with us. Whatever you choose, we’re with you.” said Robert. Hermione knew
this was the opportunity. She glanced towards Harry who nodded.

“Actually dad, Harry and I have decided to move in together,” she said simply, preparing herself
for the worst. Nobody said anything at first. Harry was waiting with baited breath.

“Are you two sure about this? You’ve just started dating. Wouldn’t it be better if you waited
for a year or so?” asked Diana uncertainly looking at Robert. Harry spoke before Hermione could
object.

“I and Hermione have never really dated. Normally people date to get to know each other better.
By the time we got together we knew each other better than ourselves. Once we were together I
realized I couldn’t spend a day without Hermione. So I asked her to move in with me,” explained
Harry calmly.

“Are both of you really sure you’d be able to manage this? Handling a house is not easy. I
understand your reasons but you could easily postpone the move slightly,” asked Robert, speaking
for the first time.

“Yes dad both of us are sure. The reason we are staying here for only two days is that we plan
to look over houses. Before the holidays end we want to buy the house and start all the work that
will be required. In that way, by the time we come out of Hogwarts, the place will be ready,”
replied Hermione.

“If that is what you two want, we’re okay with it,” said Robert exchanging a look with Diana.
Hermione smiled and hugged both her parents. A few tears filled Diana’s eyes. Hermione looked at
her concerned.

“It’s okay. I’m just finding it hard to believe that my baby is so grown up. She’s big enough to
live on her own,” said Diana sniffling.

“Oh Mum! I’ll always be your baby. And I’ll have Harry to look after me,” said Hermione hugging
her mother again. Harry watched the whole scene and wondered what the reaction of his parents would
have been.

Next day Hermione went for shopping with her mother. Harry was at home with Robert. Robert asked
him they could have a talk. Harry wasn’t surprised as he’d expected this. Hermione had warned him
the previous night.

“Do you love Hermione?” asked Robert.

“Yes I do. I’d been a fool not to realize it sooner. This year while describing the qualities of
my ideal girl I realized only one girl could satisfy them,” replied Harry. He had decided to tell
truths as far as possible.

“What are you planning in life?” asked Robert.

“I basically have two options. One is to be an auror that is to hunt dark wizards and the other
is to play Quidditch professionally. Given a choice I’d probably choose the second but that would
keep me away from Hermione for long periods of time. So I’d go for the first,” replied Harry. He
felt like he was being interviewed. Robert sensed his discomfort.

“Harry, I don’t want to grill you but you have to understand. Hermione is my only daughter and
I’m just looking out for her. Don’t worry, I won’t ask anything about your private lives. I’m not
sure if I want the correct answers to those,” said Robert. Harry tried not to look embarrassed.

“It’s okay Dr. Granger; I’d be the same way with my daughter. I’ll treat Hermione to the best of
my capabilities. Like all couples we surely will have our moments of disagreements but we’ll fight
through them,” said Harry.

“One last question Harry. I’m not sure if you are ready to answer this. Have you two ever
thought of marriage?” asked Robert.

“We’ve never spoken about it. At the moment we are too young to take a step like that. I cannot
see a future without Hermione. So it should logically be the next step. I’ll speak about it with
her,” replied Harry.

“That’s wise of you,” said Robert. The rest of the day passed without incident. The following
morning Harry and Hermione bid farewell to the Grangers and settled down at the room Harry had
booked in Leaky Cauldron. Ever since Hermione had come out of Cho’s spell they had been sleeping
together. So staying in a room wouldn’t be a problem. Not that they would be staying in the room.
Their schedule was packed. They had an early lunch before setting off to look at the houses. They
had short listed three places from the advertisements in the Daily Prophet.

The first house was a small cottage. It was located in a highly populous area. The rooms were of
a relatively small size though the living room was pretty big. There was no garden to speak off,
just a few flowerbeds.

“So what do you think?” asked Hermione.

“I think it’s too small my liking. We’ll be cramped even in the largest bedroom. The only
advantage is the living room,” replied Harry.

“The area will be really crowded. I’d like a slightly isolated place,” said Hermione.

“Doesn’t look promising. Let’s check the others. We’ll come back to it if nothing better comes
up,” suggested Harry. They headed to the next house. Even this one was in a reasonably crowded
area. The house was a lot bigger though. However there was a major problem. As the house was very
old a lot of systems were faulty. To get the house in order would be a huge expenditure.

“This is better than the last one but it is in a bad shape,” said Hermione.

“I’m not happy about the dense population of this area. I’d also like to have a garden. The
repairs can be managed. Don’t worry about the expenditure,” said Harry. Now only one place
remained. As they went there, the first thing they noticed was that it was in a semi-urban area. So
it was sparsely populated.

“That’s a major plus point straightway,” said Hermione. The house was bigger than the previous
two. It was set on top of a small hillock. There was a front garden as well as a back lawn. There
was greenery all around. Only a few houses peppered the lush green fields. The house looked
relatively modern.

“Looks pretty good from the outside,” commented Harry. The inside was even better. There were
plenty of rooms of varying sizes. Most of them were quite large.

“There is a master bedroom, two guestrooms, a large study for both of us, a living room, four
bathrooms, kitchen cum dining, a sunroom and a room for your library,” said Harry.

“I don’t need a room for my library Harry!” exclaimed Hermione.

“I don’t want the study to be cluttered. I know you are very neat and organized but at the rate
you buy books…” Harry trailed off and sighed. Hermione hit him on the arm.

“Okay fine! This looks very good. Almost like my dream house,” said Hermione.

“I completely agree. It’s spacious and well aired. The windows provide a marvelous view,”
replied Harry.

“There is just one problem. The price will probably overshoot our budget,” said Hermione.

“I thought about that. But if we bought the previous place and furnished it, the overall cost
wouldn’t be much less. And both of us like this one much more,” replied Harry.

“My parents had offered to lend some money but I refused. I wanted us to do this ourselves.
Maybe we can take a loan,” said Hermione.

“That’s my girl! I’m proud of you for that. We wouldn’t need to take a loan. I’ll get out some
extra galleons from my vault. We’ll be a bit tight for a couple of years but we’ll manage. Both of
us will be earning during these years,” said Harry.

“So this is final! We’d better sign the papers and make the payment. Unlike muggles getting a
new place isn’t a long drawn out process for us,” said Hermione happily. Both of them went back to
Leaky Cauldron satisfied with their choice.

Harry had asked the owner, Frank Lampard, to meet them for the final dealings the following
evening. At the decided time they were all present at their new house to be. The formalities were
completed and Frank handed them the keys. The house was theirs.

“I can’t believe it. It’s ours!” said Hermione.

“Who would have thought the two of us would be living in such a nice place?” said Harry putting
his arms around Hermione.

“We need to decide a name for it,” said Hermione.

“If you don’t mind, I already have a name in mind. We can change it if you want. It’s Peaceden,”
said Harry. Hermione smiled at him.

“That’s perfect Harry. It suits our home beautifully. With you having killed Voldemort it
becomes even more appropriate. You brought peace to the world,” replied Hermione. Both of them
spent the evening sitting on the floor and chatting. They didn’t feel like leaving. Both of them
were very proud to have acquired a house like this.

“Harry let’s spend the night here. From tomorrow furnishing and painting will start. We can
apparate to the nearest market and grab something to eat. I’ll conjure some mattresses and we’ll be
comfortable,” suggested Hermione.

“If that’s what you want I’m more than willing,” replied Harry. They did as planned. They packed
burgers for dinner. Hermione conjured the mattresses. They slept soundly in the night. In the
morning the painters and the carpenters arrived. Within minutes work started in full swing. Harry
and Hermione went off for shopping. They had to buy furniture, decorations, appliances and other
things for their place.

The shopping proved more difficult than expected. As they realized their tastes were opposite.
There were conflicts about colors, styles, designs etc.

“I think the plane one looks a lot better,” said Harry.

“Come on Harry! The floral one is so cute. A bit of flowers couldn’t hurt,” argued Hermione.

“At the rate we are progressing it’ll be the next century, by the time we are finished. Just
reminding you that we have only one day,” said Harry.

“Do you have a better idea? All we have been doing since morning is arguing over what to get. I
didn’t know our choices were so different,” replied Hermione heatedly.

“Actually I have a better idea. We need to get this done by today. Let’s divide the house in
two. You do one part and I’ll do the other. Eventually both of us will have to be happy with end
product. I’m sure we’ll get used to it,” suggested Harry.

“Fine. But I get the master bedroom,” said Hermione.

“Okay. I’ll take the living room. These are the two main rooms we’ll be in. The study we’ll do
half and half. Each one does his or her own area,” replied Harry.

“I’m sorry Harry for reacting the way I did. I should have been more adjusting,” said Hermione
remorsefully.

“It’s okay. For once it was my brain which worked out a perfect solution. What I said wasn’t
rigid. We can always consult each other while planning everything out. I’m sure everything will be
great,” said Harry. Their shopping finished by the afternoon. A lorry delivered their products to
their home. Since they were in a muggle market they couldn’t shrink everything and take away. When
everything was at home Harry shrunk them and placed them in one room.

“We’ll need someone to put things in their places once all the painting and furnishing is
complete. We can ask McGonagall for permission to check things here one evening,” said
Hermione.

“I’ll ask Kreacher. He can supervise the work. I’ll tell him what to put where. In that way the
house will be completely ready when we come back. Don’t worry, I’m going to give him a hat and pay
him for everything,” replied Harry. He wrote a note to McGonagall asking her to release
Kreacher.

Kreacher arrived the following day. When Harry gave him a hat, he was stunned.

“You are a free houselve now. But I want you to manage the house till we come back. I’ll be
paying you for that,” said Harry. Kreacher bowed in agreement. Harry gave him certain instructions
and left for the Leaky Cauldron with Hermione.

The holidays passed away fast. Most of the time was spent in looking over the work at their new
house. On the last night before their departure for Hogwarts, they were sitting on their bed at the
Leaky Cauldron. Such relaxed moments had been a rarity since they had left Hermione’s house.

“We’ve been doing rather well, haven’t we?” asked Hermione mischievously. Harry didn’t get her
point.

“What do you mean?” asked Harry.

“We’ve been sleeping together for over a month and have managed to abstain,” replied
Hermione.

“Oh that,” said Harry understanding. “So what’s your general view on that?” he added.

“My views have changed with time. For most of my life I thought that my first time would be
after marriage. Later I thought the first time would be when I was completely sure of it,” replied
Hermione.

“And what’s your current view?” pressed Harry.

“Since we are being so open I’ll tell you the truth. It’s taken all my willpower to stop myself
every time we’ve been intimate. I keep telling myself that the wait would be worth it. However I
don’t have any rigid rules. I trust you completely and know that you wouldn’t do anything against
my wishes,” said Hermione.

“That’s good to hear. It’ll get more difficult once we start living together. Even I’m not very
rigid but I’m afraid that one day it’ll just happen and we might regret it,” said Harry.

“Don’t worry Harry. When it happens it’ll happen. None of us have any moral restrictions. I’m
already protected. So we won’t regret it. However I want our first time to be extra special. So I’d
suggest let’s hold it until the end of the academic year. Once we’re into our home, we’ll take
things from there,” said Hermione.

“You are the most intelligent person I’ve ever met. No wonder I love you so much. We’ll do as
you say. I’m glad we were able to talk about this. Most people never talk about it and it happens
suddenly. If taking things a bit slow leads to better results, I’m all for it,” replied Harry. They
went to sleep holding each other.

Next afternoon they boarded the Hogwarts express and arrived at Hogwarts. This was their last
forty five days in the school they had grown up in.



19. Farewell
------------

**A/N: I’m sorry for the long delay. A week is too much. I’ll try to get the next chapter up
sooner. Thanks for all the reviews. As usual keep them coming. I wanted to post this chapter
quickly, so it isn’t very well edited. Keep that in mind while flaming me for grammar, spellings
etc.**

**This chapter describes Harry and co.’s last few weeks at Hogwarts. The situation is very
similar to mine. I finish college very soon. The official farewell is scheduled for Saturday. The
parts in this chapter are derived from my personal experience over the past few days. The few lines
at the start is an SMS I received from a friend (with ‘college’ replaced by ‘school’)**

Chapter Nineteen: Farewell

*Few moths to finish sweet school days,*

*Friend’s hearts cry as they depart,*

*Lovers cry but will find another place to meet,*

*Love of some which has not been revealed to each other stays unrevealed,*

*Classes remain empty,*

*These colorful days will not come back but will bring a tear and joy when we think,*

*HAPPY FINAL YEAR!*

Harry put on the Gryffindor Quidditch robes. This would be his last match for Gryffindor and
probably the last official match of his life. He had already given up the option of pursuing a
Quidditch career. He looked in the mirror. He was a touch sentimental. But he couldn’t think of it
at this time. There was a match and a championship to be won. He didn’t want to go out as a
loser.

“Our last match,” said Ron coming up to him.

“We should win it. I am determined to,” replied Harry. The rest of the team came into the room.
Harry saw the gloomy expressions. This was the last match for Dean as well. The younger ones looked
sorry to see the others go. Harry decided to change the mood.

“Attention guys and gals! This has been a great season for us. We’ve conquered all that came our
way. I had full faith in you when I chose you all to represent Gryffindor. Now it is down to this
match. We have to win this one to retain the cup. I’ve full confidence that you all will put in
your best. Let’s win this for Gryffindor!” he said, feeling every word he said. He put his right
hand forward.

“For Gryffindor!” repeated the others and stacked up their hands over Harry. Harry took a deep
breath before leading his side into the field.

“Gryffindor are ahead by eighty… Potter is diving for the snitch… He’s very close… He catches it
and GRYFFINDOR ARE CHAMPIONS!” said Luna. Under usual circumstances he would have been elated. This
time it was different. While the excitement of winning the cup couldn’t be diminished, this was
like the end of a chapter in the story of his life. As his fingers were about to catch the snitch,
part of him wanted to allow it to fly off, just to extend the happy chapter. But he realized that
if he let it go the happy chapter could have a bitter ending. The entire team got into a
celebratory huddle. Luna’s booming voice interrupted them.

“May I please request the winning captain Harry Potter, who has played final match for
Gryffindor to come up and say a few words,” she said. Harry was taken by surprise. He saw Hermione
approaching him. She smiled on hearing Luna’s announcement. Harry looked at her questioningly.

“Just speak from your heart and you’ll be okay,” said Hermione, giving him a peck. Harry
nervously took the microphone from Luna.

“Good afternoon everyone! I hadn’t expected this so I’m totally unprepared. While flying I’m a
fish in water. It is something that comes naturally to me and I enjoy every moment of it.
Representing Gryffindor for seven years has been a great experience. There is one person I need to
thank for helping me realize my abilities in this sport. He was my arch enemy while he was at
Hogwarts and we’ve had several confrontations. Yes it is Draco Malfoy. Had I not chased him, I
would probably be sitting in the audience watching this match. I’ve had the company of some truly
players during my time. My first captain Oliver Wood is the best keeper Hogwarts has seen in a long
time. There was none better than Fred and George Weasley as beaters. Angelina Johnson apart from
being a tremendous chaser was a terrible taskmaster. My best friend Ronald Weasley came back from a
shaky start to be an ideal replacement for Oliver. Finally Ginny Weasley substituted for me thrice
and never lost a game. She’ll be the favorite for captaincy next year. All in all it’s a sad day
for me to play my last game. I wish I could turn back time just to play another match. I thank all
of you for the support I received during these years. I’ll miss all this very much. Lastly thank
you Gryffindor for giving me such moments in an otherwise turbulent childhood,” said Harry and
kissed the Gryffindor crest on his robes. The whole stadium stood up to applaud. Some people
including Hermione were tearing up.

**** **** ****

It was the last week of April. This was going to be their last visit to Hogsmede. Since the
NEWTs were nearing they wouldn’t be able to go to Hogsmede after this. Only the seventh years were
going. The others would go sometime later. The Gryffindor’s had decided to go as a group. There
were eight of them.

All of them sat at Three Broomsticks sipping butterbear. It was a large round table. Rarely did
all of them spend time like this.

“We can all meet at Hogsmede after school finishes, can’t we?” asked Parvati.

“It’s not the same. One or more of us will always be busy. No one knows where we’ll be after
school ends. We may be spread all over the country or even the world. No one would have the time
for such social gatherings. We would have made new friends. So old friendships will be forgotten,”
replied Seamus.

“Don’t be so pessimistic Seamus. All it requires is an effort on our part. If we want to keep in
touch, we will. Our couplings work out very well. At least none of us will be totally alone. Harry
and Hermione are already living together. The others I’m sure will follow the suit,” said
Lavender.

“I don’t know how I’m going to control myself at the farewell party. I’d be crying buckets,”
commented Hermione.

“All of us are sure to shed a few tears. That is unless we keep cracking poor jokes to prevent
ourselves from crying,” said Ron.

“There is nothing shameful about crying on farewell night. We’ve spent the best years of our
lives at Hogwarts. It’s going to be hard saying goodbye. Especially for me, coming to Hogwarts was
a lifeline. Otherwise I’d probably been starving at the Dursleys,” said Harry.

“I agree with you Harry. I’m not a very emotional person but just thinking of all this ending is
killing me,” added Neville.

“Stop these sob stories now. We are here to enjoy. Let’s go and visit each shop. That’ll be a
nice final tour of Hogsmede,” suggested Ron. The others agreed. They went into all their favorite
shops. They bought plenty of goodies from Honeydukes. Ron and Neville specially bought some for
their girlfriends since they weren’t present. The boys also bought some tricks from Zonko’s.

They had a heavy lunch. Even some of the other students joined. They spoke about the time they
had spent together at Hogwarts. There seemed to be plenty to talk about. Many secrets were
revealed. Neville admitted that he had a crush on Hermione during fourth year. Ernie McMillan of
Hufflepuff told about his escapades to steal food from the kitchen. Terry Boot told about the time
he’d mixed a sleeping potion into Snape’s pumpkin juice. Everyone laughed. The day was a memorable
one for all of them.

**** **** ****

Before the NEWTs started the seventh years would be given preparation leave starting from the
third week of May. The NEWTs would be starting in the second week of June and continue for two
weeks. Before the leave started each Professor was to give a farewell lecture. Harry looked forward
on hearing from all of them. Professor Sprout and Professor Flitwick were the only ones to have
taught him through the seven years. Professor Sprout spoke in a very kind voice.

“It has been an absolute pleasure teaching this batch of students. I’ve learned a great deal
from teaching all of you. Most of you have done well in my class. If I had to pick up the best
Herbology student in the class, it would be Neville Longbottom. I wish you all the best for the
NEWTs and also for the future. Make full use of the leave. Only the seventh years have this
privilege,” she said. The students applauded. Professor Flitwick wasn’t much different.

“Many people think Charms is a poor man’s Transfiguration. Especially at NEWT level, it is
widely believed that those people, who don’t qualify for Transfiguration, opt for Charms. However
that is not true. Charms is an independent subject. I’m glad you all have given the subject the
respect it deserves. Miss Granger and Mr. Boot have been the star students. I hope at least a few
of you would continue with this subject, in the later part of your life. I’ll be retiring from my
position in a few years time. Maybe one of you could take my place,” he said. Hermione’s ears had
perked up at the last sentence. Perhaps she could be Flitwick’s replacement. Harry understood
Hermione’s thoughts. He gave her an encouraging smile.

They had a quiet lunch break. Most students never enjoyed lessons. But when you were about to
attend your last few classes at school, it felt different. What Sprout and Flitwick had said
touched them deeply. Suddenly they didn’t want classes to end. They had the three remaining
subjects after lunch. That would be the end. First up it was Transfiguration.

“Since I’ve taught you all for just a year, it’s not my place to give you a farewell. I wish to
invite Minerva McGonagall, who’s taught you this subject for the past six years,” said Professor
Tonks. Everyone clapped as McGonagall walked into the class.

“It’s nice to be back in the classroom again. I’ve missed this. Transfiguration, as you know is
a pure branch of magic. Whichever field you choose, you’ll need Transfiguration. So take it very
seriously. Between me and Nymphadora, we’ve tried to make things clear for you. I’m confident that
all of you will succeed in life,” said McGonagall. Professor Longbottom refrained from saying
anything. Since she’d been teaching only for a year, she didn’t know the students inside out. She
gave them a general idea about career options involving Potions. She pinpointed Hermione as the
most talented potion brewer. Everyone expected Professor Lupin to follow the suit but were proved
wrong.

“I’m the most appropriate person to bid you farewell. I’ve taught you for two years, which is
the maximum for anyone in my subject. The threat of Dark forces has reduced considerably since
Voldemort’s demise but defense against them cannot be ignored. Mr. Potter here by far the best in
this subject. This subject will be used only if you go in for an Auror training program. If you’re
not this is the last time you’ll need it. But be warned, spells can always come handy and get you
out of a difficult situation. Anyway, all the best for the NEWTs, I won’t keep you long. You’d
better go and work,” he said. That was the end of it. They weren’t going to have anymore classes at
Hogwarts. It felt strange. In a way their school life was already over.

The sole motive over the next three weeks was studying for the NEWTs. The only time Harry and
Hermione got with each other was when they were in their bed. But they were so tired by then, that
they could hardly talk. Ron, Neville and Seamus had become night buffs. They studied throughout the
night and slept during the morning. Ron said the quietness helped him concentrate better.

There were two or three day gaps between each exam. The first exam was that of Potions. It was
followed by Transfiguration, Herbology, Charms and Defense against Dark Arts. Harry’s best exam was
as usual Defense against Dark Arts. He did well in the others to. He was slightly disappointed with
Herbology but didn’t bother much. Hermione came out with a smiling face after each exam. All her
examinations had gone off really well.

Unlike their previous years, this time their results would be coming out in a couple days. This
was to help them decide on career options. So by the time they had just about recovered from the
exams, it was time for the results. Hermione was the most nervous. She kept pacing up and down
waiting for the owls to arrive. Harry tried cooling her down but was pretty nervous himself. Ron
was chewing his nails.

“There they come!” shouted Lavender and Parvati together. All of them had their envelopes
dropped right next to them.

Harry tore open the envelope and sighed in satisfaction. He’d secured an O in Defense against
Dark Arts and E’s in the rest. He looked at Hermione who was smiling.

“No need to ask you what you got,” said Harry.

“All O’s,” she boasted. Harry thumped her back.

“That has got to be the biggest surprise of my life,” he said sarcastically. Ron came up to
them.

“I got an O, two E’s and two A’s,” he said. Harry congratulated him. The others had done as per
their expectations, though some of the Hufflepuff’s didn’t do well.

Now that their results were out, it was time to decide on their futures. One evening Harry,
Hermione and Ron, along with Luna were sitting in the fields. They were discussing their career
options.

“My marks are good enough for getting into academics. In fact I can even apply for a scholarship
though I don’t need one. EIWE only demands academic excellence,” said Hermione.

“What subject will you be majoring in?” asked Ron.

“My choice was between Transfiguration and Charms. Initially the scales were tilted towards
Transfiguration but after hearing Professor Flitwick’s retirement plans, I’ve decided to go for
Charms. Transfiguration will be one of my subsidiary subjects. The other would be Potions. That’s
the temporary plan,” said Hermione.

“Don’t you think going for Charms is a risk? What if Flitwick retires before you are through?
Majoring in Transfiguration is a bigger accomplishment. That may be more useful if you can’t land
Flitwick’s job,” said Harry.

“I’d thought about that. So I spoke to Flitwick. He said he would be retiring in about four
years. That leaves me more than enough time to complete my degree. I’ve given this a great deal of
thought. I’m confident that what I’m doing is right,” said Hermione determinedly.

“And I trust your judgment,” said Harry. “What about you Ron?” he asked.

“Well my grades aren’t good enough for academics. I’d never wanted to get into that anyway. I’m
thinking of business. Like Fred and George I plan to open a shop. Since Dad’s promotion money is
not a problem. Exactly what I’d be dealing in, I’m not sure. I’ll discuss things with my parents.
They might have some good ideas,” said Ron.

“Wow! I think you’ll be a great businessman. Will you have time for other things?” asked
Luna.

“I’ll always have time for you, if that’s what you mean. You are bigger than any business,”
replied Ron. Luna blushed.

“What about you Harry? You still on for the Auror program?” asked Luna.

“Oh yes! My grade in Defense against Dark Arts has once again proved that, it is the only option
for me. With recommendations from Lupin, Tonks and McGonagall I’ll have no trouble getting into the
Ministry Auror training program, which is the best. The admission into that is only through
recommendations. You can actually interact with professional Aurors there. That’s fixed for me,”
replied Harry.

**** **** ****

Only a couple of days remained at Hogwarts. The feeling of this being the end was finally
settling in. That made it more painful. Padma Patil of Ravenclaw was found weeping in the common
room, at the thought of getting separated from her friends. Similar things happened to a number of
students including Hermione.

She was pondering over the years she had spent at Hogwarts. She remembered chasing the
Philosopher’s Stone, saving Sirius, helping Harry through his tasks, the ordeal at the ministry, a
failed relationship, finding her loved one, falling hopelessly in love with him and many more
things. Her worst memory was losing fifty points in first year. Her best moment was obviously when
Harry confessed his feelings for her. It was said schooldays were a person’s best days. These days
would never come back. As she thought a few tears slipped out.

Harry saw her crying and knew the reason immediately. It was amazing that without speaking he
could understand her. It was a sort of telepathy. He sat down next to her.

“Don’t cry Hermione. We’ll be in touch with the others. At least we have each other. Think of
somebody who will end up living alone in a faraway land. Most of our friends will be near us. We’ll
manage well. I’m feeling very sad too but let’s not spoil the last two says all of us have
together,” consoled Harry.

“I don’t know why this is happening. You know that I’ve never been very fond of my former
roommates. But at the thought of leaving them, I’m feeling like leaving a part of myself behind,”
said Hermione.

“Everyone who’s studied at Hogwarts leaves some part of himself or herself behind. But he or she
takes back a mind full of memories. That’s a fair exchange I guess,” said Harry, trying to cheer
her up. Hermione laughed through her tears.

**** **** ****

The official farewell was scheduled for their last night at Hogwarts. Everybody was in
formalwear. Despite the gloomy mood, everyone couldn’t help enjoying themselves. There were a few
moist eyes but they were drowned by feelings of friendship and loyalty. The seventh years were
presented a plaque. Harry and Hermione received special plaques for being the Head students.
McGonagall addressed the gathering.

“Time has come for us to bid farewell to another batch of students. These students have seen the
school in many forms. They’ve witnessed the rise and fall of Voldemort. They’ve fought countless
battles against evil. They’ve seen Hogwarts under the charge of two Headmasters. Most importantly
they’re they have had a Defense against Dark Arts teacher teaching them for two years. This has
happened after a very long time. You all share a great bond of friendship and love within
yourselves. Keep that up. The doors of Hogwarts are always open for you. It’s been a great pleasure
for me and my colleagues to have taught you. Lastly I’d like to express my regret that Albus
Dumbledore didn’t live to see this day. He would have been proud of all of you. His portrait
specially asked me to wish you all the best for the future,” she said. Everybody applauded.

The food was great. This was their last dinner at Hogwarts. They would miss food appearing by
itself on the plates. When it was time for bed, the students hugged each other. Harry and Hermione
walked into their quarters for the last time.

“This is where we fell in love,” said Harry.

“I know, it’ll hold a special place in my heart,” replied Hermione.

“If we hadn’t been alone here, I may not ever have had the nerves to tell you how I felt,” said
Harry.

“And both of us would keep getting together and breaking up with the wrong person. You’d
probably be Mr. Cho Chang,” teased Hermione.

“Don’t speak her name in front of me,” said Harry seriously. He felt ill, whenever he thought of
Cho. If she had succeeded in her plan, his life would have been totally miserable at this
point.

“I’m sorry,” said Hermione. Both of them got into Harry’s bedroom for their last sleep at the
Head’s quarters.

The morning after was a very emotional one. Even the boys couldn’t stop their tears. Harry tried
to remain strong for Hermione’s sake. But his resolve was weakening by the minute. Finally he
couldn’t control and broke down like the others. Almost all students were crying. As they got into
the Hogwarts Express, they made the usual promises to keep in touch.

In the train Harry took Hermione to the Head’s cabin. Ron sat with Luna.

“What did you want to talk about?” asked Ron.

“How do you want to proceed with our relationship? We’ll be far away from each other,” she
said.

“It’s only for a year. After that you’d be free too,” replied Ron.

“So you want to continue this? I’m sorry for sounding like this but this needs to be cleared.
Generally long distance relationships don’t work out,” said Luna.

“Generally I guy like me doesn’t get a second chance after what I did. I’m willing to challenge
the impossible to be with you,” said Ron. Luna didn’t speak for a moment. Ron thought he’d said
something wrong.

“That is if you want,” he added hastily. Still Luna didn’t speak. Ron became confused. He was
about to speak but Luna beat him to it.

“I love you.”



20. An Unexpected Problem
-------------------------

**A/N: Again I have to apologize for the long delay. As mentioned in the previous author’s note
I had my farewell at college. It was even worse than what I’ve written here. I cried for the first
time since I was eight. I was in no state to write after that. That coupled with all my work kept
me away from the story. At one point I was contemplating abandoning it. However I couldn’t. I’ve
grown a bit too attached to this story to leave it midway.**

**There will be three more chapters after this. Everything has been planned out so hopefully
updates would be quick. The last bit of drama starts in this chapter. There is an eighteen month
jump at one point, so keep that in mind. Thank you to all the reviewers. I know the continuity has
been broken but please keep up the reviews. Maybe you can glance through the last one or two
chapters before reading this. Happy reading!**

Chapter Twenty: An Unexpected Problem

“I love you too,” replied Ron, simply. Luna smiled at him. They shared a quick kiss. Though they
had been together for a while, it made all the difference after those three words had been
said.

“That’s the first time somebody has said that to me,” said Luna.

“Ditto for me. Though I’ve been in relationships before, never has anyone confessed their love
for me. I’m glad you did the honors,” replied Ron.

“Didn’t Parvati say it? I thought she was serious about you,” said Luna. Ron looked slightly
uncomfortable.

“No, she never said it. If I hadn’t got caught, she would have said it. Now that I think about
it, I think it was a blessing in disguise that I got caught. It would have hurt the others more had
they found out later. And I found you during my isolated days,” answered Ron.

While admitting their love for each other, Ron and Luna had forgotten that they were spending
their last few moments together. Of course they’d meet during the course of the holidays, but it
wasn’t the same as living under the same roof. Harry and Hermione’s sober faces at their
compartment door brought them back to reality. The four of them sat together.

“The moment of separation is very close,” said Harry.

“Please don’t speak like that Harry! This is the true test of our friendship. If we can keep in
touch despite our physical distance, it’ll prove the strength of our bond. As it is all of us are
feeling bad and if you make comments like that, everything will get out of hand,” scolded Luna.
Harry kept quiet.

“So you two looking forward to seeing your place?” asked Ron, breaking the silence.

“Yes we are. It is the only positive thing in my mind at the moment. I never imagined leaving
school would be so tough,” replied Hermione. The train started slowing down before coming to a
standstill. Nobody wanted to move. Ron took the initiative and got up. He held Luna’s hand but she
was refusing to move. A few tears leaked out of her eyes.

“Come on Luna! You just said this was a test. I promise you we’ll pass it with flying colors,”
said Ron. They quietly walked out of the train. The moment had arrived. Everybody hugged each
other. The last goodbyes were said.

Harry and Hermione apparated outside their house long faces. The mood couldn’t have been worse.
Though they managed to keep the tears away, they were crying within. They could have gone into the
house just by apparating or Alohamora but Harry rang the doorbell. Kreacher opened the door. What
they saw took their breath away.

Their entire gloom disappeared. The house looked absolutely stunning. It had been decorated,
furnished and painted exactly as they had wanted. It was a welcome sight. They couldn’t find even
one flaw.

“It’s perfect,” said Hermione.

“It’s all ours. I don’t think professionals could have done it better,” said Harry.

Both of them sat down in the living room after looking through the other rooms. They were just
as good. Kreacher brought them some refreshments. They ate and drank in silence. They were still
overwhelmed at the sight of their home. Harry turned to Kreacher.

“Thank you Kreacher for all you’ve done for the house. Without you it wouldn’t have like this.
Now you can return to Hogwarts. I’ve left your payment with Professor McGonagall. She’ll give it to
you,” he said. Kreacher bowed and disappeared.

“I’m glad you’ve decided against keeping Kreacher permanently,” said Hermione.

“At our age it’s not a good idea to keep a houselve. We should learn to do things ourselves.
Besides that we could do with some privacy,” replied Harry mischievously.

“Exactly what do you have in mind, Mr. Potter?” asked Hermione moving closer to him.

“As much as I would like to take your offer, we should decide on a few things regarding the
house. Maybe we can make up for it in the night,” said Harry. Hermione nodded.

“Okay, how good are your cooking skills?” asked Harry.

“I’m afraid they aren’t great. I can make a few basic things but for elaborate meals I need a
lot of practice,” said Hermione.

“That’s alright! At least there’s something besides Quidditch which you are not good at. So I’ll
do most of the cooking. You can take a few tips from me to start with. Thanks to the Dursleys, my
cooking is rather good,” said Harry.

“I can manage the finances of the house. We’ll be slightly tight on that front due to the high
cost of this place. However at the moment, things are under control. Within two or three years
it’ll be absolutely fine,” offered Hermione.

“That’s good. I’m rather poor at this. The other things we can share,” said Harry. Kreacher had
kept a large supply of food at their place but still they went shopping for some groceries. They
felt like adults. It was a new experience for both of them and they were enjoying every bit of
it.

Harry made a meat pie for dinner. Hermione too helped by making a soup. Their first meal at home
was an affair to remember. It wasn’t anything special but everything was new for them starting from
cooking, laying the table, serving food, eating alone in their own house and cleaning the
dishes.

“Wow! I love this! I hate to say but my thoughts about leaving Hogwarts seem like ages ago. The
day has been superb,” said Hermione.

“I know what you mean. We should have a party with everyone here. They’ll love the place. I’m so
glad you are here with me. If we had to separate like everyone else, I don’t know how I would have
managed,” replied Harry. Hermione kissed him softly. Harry kissed back and it kept getting more and
more passionate.

“Want to continue this in our bedroom?” asked Harry huskily.

“Yeah!” said Hermione quickly before recapturing Harry’s lips. They had great difficulty finding
their way to the bedroom. No matter how hard they tried they couldn’t keep their hands of each
other. They fell on to the bed as soon as they got to the room. Their limbs were all tangled up.
Harry’s hand found its way under Hermione’s shirt. She gasped in pleasure. Things were heating up
very quickly.

“Hermione, I won’t be able to stop after this,” said Harry desperately.

“Then don’t stop,” replied Hermione. Harry sat still.

“Are you sure of this? We can wait if you want. I don’t want to pressurize you,” he said.

“Harry, we’d had this discussion before. I have no problem. I’m totally in love with you and
trust you completely. This being our first day at home makes it special. I’ve never been surer of
anything,” replied Hermione.

“I love you so much,” said Harry and literally jumped on to her.

**** **** **** **** **** **** **** **** ****

18 MONTHS LATER – CHRISTMAS, 2009

**** **** **** **** **** **** **** **** ****

“I hope there is enough to eat, I’m ravishing,” said Ron coming walking into Peaceden. There was
a party on Christmas Eve at Harry and Hermione’s place.

“There is enough food for a DECENT person’s appetite,” replied Hermione, trying to sound firm.
They exchanged pleasantries before sitting down.

“So who all are coming?” asked Luna.

“The Gryffindor’s from our year at Hogwarts and a few more. Some friends of Harry’s are also
coming. They are his classmates from Auror training. I’d called a friend of mine but she couldn’t
make it,” replied Hermione.

“So are you two excited about the next step?” asked Harry.

“Yeah I’m excited as well as nervous. Moving in together with Luna was always my dream. Now we
have enough money between us to get a house. We’ve already looked around a bit. We’ll see some more
before making the final decision,” answered Ron. The doorbell rang and Seamus and Dean walked in
with their girlfriends.

“Congrats everybody! Ron and Luna for deciding to move in together and Harry and Hermione for
your second anniversary,” said Dean.

“Thanks a lot,” said Harry and Ron together, “However our anniversary is not until midnight,”
added Harry.

“I’m surprised Neville and Ginny are late,” said Hermione.

“Oh I know the reason for that. Just as me and Lav were walking into your place, we saw two
people behind the large bush. They can’t even survive a few hours without snogging,” said
Seamus.

“Excuse me; this is my sister you are talking about! My baby sister,” said Ron clearing his
throat.

“Come on Ron! You know very well how they act around each other. We can expect the doorbell to
ring any moment,” said Seamus. Just as he said this, the doorbell chimed. Everyone laughed.

They could see what Seamus meant. Ginny’s lipstick was smudged and her makeup was not as it
should have been. Neville’s hair was unruly despite his best efforts to comb them properly.

“Sorry we are late. I’d got caught up with some work,” said Neville. Everyone stifled a
giggle.

“What’s the joke?” asked Ginny innocently.

“Have a look at yourselves in the mirror and you’ll understand. Even if Seamus hadn’t told us
what he’d seen behind the bush, we would easily have made out. Did you work involved checking out
Ginny’s tonsils?” countered Parvati. Both of them blushed deeply.

“Can we please change the subject?” said Ron. They didn’t embarrass Ginny and Neville
anymore.

Five minutes before midnight Harry called Hermione aside. “Can I talk to you alone in the
bedroom?” he asked. Hermione nodded.

“I know I’ve said this to you many times but I can’t stop myself. You are the best thing that
has ever happened to me. Without you I’d be a nobody. Though I’ve enjoyed each and every moment
with you, the last two years have been special. We’ll be celebrating our second anniversary in a
couple of minutes and I want to give you something special on this extra special occasion,” said
Harry.

“Oh Harry! You didn’t have to. You just said the words which are in my mind. I feel exactly the
same way,” said Hermione. She saw Harry taking out a small velvet covered box. “Harry!” She
gasped.

“No it’s not what you think. It is a promise ring. I promise to stand by you no matter what
happens, for the rest of my life,” said Harry. Hermione kissed him fiercely. Very quickly both of
them were on the bed.

“As much as I would like to have you right here, right now, it’s rude to keep our guests
waiting,” said Hermione reluctantly getting up. Harry followed her.

“Thanks again for the ring,” said Hermione as they walked downstairs hand in hand.

Since they had had a late night they had decided to sleep in. But early in the morning, Hermione
woke up not feeling well. Her stomach felt uneasy, she rushed to the bathroom and immediately had a
bout of vomiting. She brewed a potion for herself. She felt better after taking it. She didn’t wake
up Harry as he’d be worried. She lay down next to him and went back to sleep. When they woke up
Hermione felt perfectly fine. She dismissed her sickness a freaky happening. Perhaps she’d eaten
too much the previous night.

However the matter wasn’t going to die down so easily. The events repeated the next day and the
next. Since it was early in the morning, Harry had no idea. Hermione didn’t feel the need to tell
him. She suspected some sort of flu. She took a stronger potion. The potion seemed to have done the
trick. Till New Year she didn’t get sick. But on the third of January it happened again. Hermione
was now getting worried. She decided to do some research in her library.

As she read her eyes widened. She rechecked in two other books. Her symptoms were clear signs of
pregnancy. This couldn’t be happening. Things were going so well. This would spoil everything. She
worried about it throughout the day. She contemplated telling Harry but wanted to be sure herself
first. So in the evening she bought a few muggle pregnancy tests. They were the most accurate
indicator. She would test them in the next morning.

Hermione was again sick in the morning. Unfortunately for her Harry woke up. He saw Hermione was
in a bad state.

“Hey what’s the matter? It can’t be very serious. We’ll just go to St. Mungo’s and have you
checked up,” he said putting an arm around her.

“Probably that’s the best solution,” said Hermione hesitantly. Harry noticed the uneasiness in
her voice but didn’t ask anything else.

“I’ll prepare some breakfast. You get ready. Take care of yourself,” he said, walking towards
the kitchen. This was Hermione’s chance. Quickly she performed the test. She had five strips. It
took five minutes for the test to give its result. She waited with bated breath, not even looking
at the strips. Five minutes passed, six, seven, and eight… The result would be right behind her
now. Slowly she turned around. All five were positive.

Hermione sat down on the floor dazed. It was now confirmed. She was carrying Harry’s child. She
didn’t know how she’d tell this to Harry. This wasn’t in their plans. Both of them planned
everything together. They didn’t imagine this would happen.

Seeing no sign of Hermione, Harry grew concerned. He went upstairs and knocked on the bathroom
door. There was no answer. He called out her name. Still no one answered. He opened the door. The
sight of Hermione on the floor alarmed him tremendously.

“What’s the matter Hermione? Are you alright?” he asked helping her up.

“Harry… I’m… I’m… Pr… Pregnant,” Hermione stammered back.

“What?” Harry asked not believing what he had heard.

“I’m pregnant,” repeated Hermione. Harry stood still not saying anything. Hermione grew
uncomfortable at his silence.

“Please say something,” she urged him.

“How could this have happened? We took all the required precautions. You didn’t make a mistake,
did you?” Harry asked.

“Harry how can you speak like that, at a time like this? You know very well that the precautions
aren’t hundred percent effective. And for your information I was extra careful, each and every
time,” replied Hermione angrily.

“I’m sorry for reacting like that. This has come as a real shock for me. I believe you feel the
same. We have to sit down and think out our plan of action. This was totally unexpected. Anyway
whatever it is we are in it together,” said Harry. Though he was being supportive, Hermione could
feel a certain coolness in his voice, which normally wasn’t there. They ate breakfast in silence.
Never had they had a quieter meal together. Harry was deep in thought. Hermione spoke after they
had finished.

“So what do we do from here?” she asked.

“Let’s sit in the living room. This is a very serious matter. We must not make any mistake. Even
a small mistake may cost us dear,” he said. He kept thinking in the living room.

“As bad as it sounds, there is no other way,” said Harry. Hermione was confused.

“What do you mean Harry?” she asked.

“You should get an abortion,” said Harry. Hermione turned pale. This was the last thing she was
expecting from Harry. She didn’t know how to react. She had been slightly relieved when Harry
hadn’t blown up on hearing the news. But what she heard now tore her. Surely Harry didn’t mean
it.

“But Harry there has to be another way. We can’t just kill the baby,” she objected.

“I know it sounds horrible. However there is no other way. I have thought about it long and
hard. If you have a better suggestion I’d be happy to hear it,” replied Harry. Hermione thought
about it for a few minutes. She couldn’t think of anything.

“So I take it you’ve agreed to my solution. I’m sorry about it but it’s the only way out,” said
Harry. Hermione nodded briefly.

“Good! Don’t feel guilty. We’ll have plenty of opportunities later. There’s no point in delaying
this. Let’s get over with it. Get ready. We’re going to St. Mungo’s,” said Harry. Hermione walked
to her room to get ready. She still didn’t feel they were doing the right thing. She felt as if
they were murdering someone. She reconciled herself by thinking there was no life to be
murdered.

Harry had booked an appointment with Dr. Emily Bones. Both of them waited outside her room. When
it was their turn, they got up but Hermione asked Harry to wait outside. She wanted to go through
this alone.

“Good morning, Dr. Bones,” said Hermione with a stiff smile.

“Good morning Ms. Granger. I’ve heard a lot about you from my daughter Susan. You were in the
same year at Hogwarts, weren’t you?” replied Emily with a smile.

“Yes we were. How is she doing now?” asked Hermione politely.

“Oh Susan is doing well. She is my assistant here. She’s just gone to check on a few patients.
Maybe you’ll see her after a while. Now what is the problem?” said Emily.

“I’m pregnant,” replied Hermione shortly. Emily looked at her for a few seconds before
speaking.

“That’s great! You maybe a bit young but don’t worry. I’ve dealt with cases younger than you. It
shouldn’t be a problem but where is the father. Surely he hasn’t deserted you,” said Emily looking
slightly concerned at the serious look on Hermione’s face.

“No that’s not the case. He’s waiting outside. I wanted to meet you alone,” said Hermione
quickly. She didn’t want Emily to think badly of Harry.

“Then you should be happy! Don’t make a serious face like that. I understand your nervousness
but let me assure you that there will be no problem. It is a wonderful feeling to have life inside
you. Even I had Susan at your age. Initially I was skeptical but when I felt her kicking for the
first time, I was proud. It was like I was helping somebody exist. I’m sure you’ll feel the same
way,” said Emily not noticing the change of expression on Hermione’s face.

“But it’s not life yet. It’s just a fetus,” said Hermione.

“How can you say it’s not life? The baby in there is as much alive as you and me. Don’t ever say
that. It’s your baby. You have to be a responsible mother,” replied Emily.

“But…,” started Hermione. Emily stopped her.

“Lie down there. I’ll show you what I mean. It’s surprising to hear this from you. Normally all
mothers are protective of their baby,” said Susan. Hermione lay down without protesting. Emily
rubbed an ointment over her belly. She then carried out an ultrasound. Emily smiled at what she saw
but didn’t tell Hermione yet. She showed the zoomed in visuals to Hermione.

“Look there is the head of the baby. And look at those tiny limbs. It’s developing inside you.
The shape is like any human being. It’s getting nutrition from you. How can you not call this
life?” asked Emily. Hermione saw the visuals. She understood what Emily meant. There was indeed
life inside her. It was killing her to go ahead with the abortion. What she was about to do was
nothing short of murder. But it had to be done. That was the decision she and Harry had taken.

“I hope you are convinced. So I guess you want to know about the morning sickness and other
symptoms. Well there is nothing to worry…,” she was stopped by Hermione.

“Doctor I want to get an abortion,” said Hermione forcefully.

“Oh I see. Well, lie down again. It won’t take very long,” replied Emily, realizing the reason
for Hermione’s earlier attitude.

A tear leaked out of Hermione’s eye as she lay down.

**** **** ****

When Hermione came out of Dr. Bones’ room Harry was nowhere to be found. The receptionist told
her that he had an urgent call from his training institute. At home Hermione sat alone. The events
of the morning flashed through her head. She wanted to talk to Harry. Suddenly the phone rang. It
was Harry.

“Hi Hermione, I’m sorry for ditching you like that. I hope you are alright,” he said.

“Yeah I’m fine. When will you be back?” asked Hermione.

“I had to interview a suspected deatheater. I’ll be back in a couple of hours,” said Harry.
Hermione waited patiently for Harry to arrive. She kept wondering if what she had done was right.
Finally Harry arrived.

“Some holiday this is,” he groaned. Both of them sat down with cups of coffee.

“I’m really proud of you Hermione. It’s not easy for any mother to go through an abortion but
you understood the situation well. It was the only thing we could have done. Was the process
painful? I should have been there with you,” said Harry trying to cheer Hermione up. Hermione took
a deep breath before replying.

“Harry I didn’t get an abortion”



21. Plenty of Talks
-------------------

**A/N: The response to the last chapter was terrific. It generated the maximum number of
reviews. Thank you everyone for that. That forced me into getting this chapter up quickly. I
couldn’t keep you people waiting again. That wouldn’t be fair. Please keep that up in this chapter
though it is not a cliffie. I’ve noticed that the number of reviews go up drastically if the
chapter is a cliffie.**

**Lot** **of you felt Harry was out of character in the last chapter. I agree with that but
he does have a point. He provides his explanation in this chapter. You also meet many other
characters who express their opinion on the latest bit of drama. As the chapter title suggests,
this one is full of conversations. Happy reading!**

Chapter Twenty-One: Plenty of Talks

“But you said on the phone that you were okay,” said Harry confused.

“I am alright but I didn’t get an abortion. I had a talk to Dr. Bones and took the decision. She
thinks I did the right thing,” replied Hermione. She was expecting Harry to lose his temper. He
did.

“What the hell do you think you are doing? We took this decision mutually. We agreed it was for
the best. Why did you have to back out at the last moment? Did the Doctor give you some shitty
moral advice? Damn! We have to go through it again! What a day!” shouted Harry.

“You’re wrong Harry. We don’t have to go through it again. I’m not killing my childr… child. Our
child. You were also wrong about this being a mutual decision. I never had a say. You decided it
unilaterally. Thank goodness I realized my mistake in time,” said Hermione calmly. Harry held his
head with his hands.

“I’m going to go mad! Okay I think I rushed things a bit but don’t say it was my decision. I
asked you if had a better idea and you kept quiet. That showed you were okay with what I said,”
said Harry.

“At that moment I couldn’t think of anything. So I was forced to agree with you. I was
apprehensive about it throughout and after I spoke to Dr. Bones I took the final decision. There is
no way I’m going through with an abortion,” replied Hermione.

“So what do you propose we do? Perhaps you have it planned out,” asked Harry trying to be
reasonable.

“Whatever it is we are going to have this baby. We may have to sacrifice everything but we
cannot kill it,” said Hermione.

“That’s hardly a solution Hermione. You say you are willing to sacrifice all. Let me give you an
idea. Both of us have a couple of years to complete our education. We’ve put in so much hard work
over the past year and a half. If we have the baby, one or both of us will have to stop our
courses. All our work would be in vain. You are the brightest witch of our age. Would you accept
something like that?” said Harry.

“Many people face this problem. We didn’t bargain for this. But let’s not make another mistake
to cover what happened. I can take a year off and rejoin where I left. Come on Harry. I know you
aren’t this heartless!” urged Hermione.

“I’m too tired after such a long day. My mind isn’t working properly. Please let’s continue this
discussion tomorrow. A good night’s rest can do wonders,” pleaded Harry. Hermione agreed. She took
it as a positive sign.

While Harry’s idea had seemed a good one it turned out to be a total flop. With the state in
which their minds were, neither of them got a minute’s sleep. Throughout the night they kept
twisting and turning on the bed. They didn’t say anything to each other despite knowing the other
was wide awake. Hermione once thought about going to another room and trying to sleep but was too
lazy to get up. Finally at five in the morning both of them got up. They had dark circles under
their eyes. After a quick breakfast they resumed their talk.

“So you think you can leave your course midway. Though that is quite unfeasible let’s assume you
get permission to do that. As you know our financial situation is still not fully stable. Whatever
you got from writing a few reports, you won’t get. How can we sustain a baby? I don’t want to be a
failure as a parent. I want to be the best father to my child and I hate to say that at the moment
I don’t have the recourses to be one. Neither time nor the desired amount of money. How would you
feel if our child hated us?” reasoned Harry. Hermione’s flicker of hope faded. She was desperately
wishing Harry would agree to have the child.

“We’ve faced far more difficult problems before. We’ve overcome them. There is no reason why we
can’t overcome this. As for the child, it is the love you have for him or her which will matter the
most. Not what you can give him and what you can’t. Like everything else we can fight our way
through this,” replied Hermione.

“Hermione I’ve patiently explained everything to you. I just don’t understand why you are being
so stubborn. Please see it from my point of view. This could easily turn into a major problem from
which there will be no way back,” said Harry.

“I’ve heard everything. I’ve told you I’m not getting an abortion. I could ask you the same
thing. Why are you being so stubborn? Do you have a problem with marriage” asked Hermione. Harry
sighed.

“Hermione you surprise me! You are forgetting I gave you a promise ring less than ten days back.
That is basically an unofficial engagement. I can get married to you tomorrow if you want. Marriage
will not have much effect on the life we are living. Of course we’ll be officially together for the
rest of our life. On the other hand a child will change our life drastically. I’ve already told you
about the implications,” replied Harry.

“I knew that would be your answer. Sorry for doubting you on that. But we still haven’t solved
our problem. Harry you always said you wanted to have a family – a large family. Then why this
sudden change? I’d expected you to be shocked initially but eventually I thought you’d be happy,”
said Hermione.

“I meant every word I said. I do want a large family. I want it with you. As you know I’ve never
really had a family to speak of. Don’t think that it was easy for me to suggest abortion. After you
went up to get ready I nearly cried. But I realized that it was the only way. Please understand me
Hermione,” pleaded Harry.

“So you are hell bent about the abortion,” said Hermione.

“It’s the only way,” said Harry.

“Are you sure you mean that?” asked Hermione.

“Yes,” replied Harry shortly hoping that Hermione would understand. Hermione got up.

“Then we should proceed in our own way because there is no way I’m killing my child,” said
Hermione and walked away. Harry followed her.

“What’s the meaning of ‘in our own way’? We haven’t completed our discussion,” said
Hermione.

“There is nothing more to discuss. Neither of us is going to relent. Our paths are different, at
least till the point one of us gives in. Since the decision to abort the baby is entirely mine,
I’ve decided to keep it,” replied Hermione. She started taking out her clothes from the cupboard.
Harry stared at her in disbelief.

“Don’t say you are leaving,” he said in a trembling voice.

“I’m not. But I don’t think we can stay in the same room while we feel so differently about such
a sensitive matter. I’m moving to the guestroom,” said Hermione. Harry watched her helplessly. He
wanted to stop her but couldn’t. She took her things and walked out of the room.

Harry stared blankly after her. Was this really happening? Why was Hermione acting like this? He
debated on making one final attempt to convince her but knew that it was no use. He needed to
discuss things with someone. He apparated to Ron and Luna’s new flat.

“Well this is a surprise. We didn’t think you’d find time to be with us. Hermione has you under
a spell all the time,” said Luna welcoming him. When she saw his face he immediately knew something
was wrong. Harry told the whole story to Ron and Luna. They listened in amazement. When he came to
the part about the abortion Luna stopped him.

“Harry why in the world did you suggest that?” she asked.

“Let him complete what he’s saying,” said Ron. Luna looked indignant but didn’t object. She let
Harry continue. Harry told them his reasons for the decision he had taken. He concluded with
Hermione’s stubbornness and her current stand.

“I understand your point…” started Ron but got interrupted by Luna.

“What do you mean Ron? Are you saying that you wouldn’t support me if I were to get pregnant?”
asked Luna enraged.

“Luna, you have this very bad habit of not letting people finish what they are trying to say!
Let me finish! I was saying that while I understand Harry’s apprehensions, I would not even think
of an abortion. If you were to get pregnant I would stand by you at each and every step,” finished
Ron. He looked angrily towards Luna.

“I’m sorry for jumping to conclusions. I should have known that,” said Luna apologetically.
Harry watched the entire scene in front of him.

“I feel pained that you feel that I’m not supporting Hermione. She means everything to me. All I
did was to suggest what I felt was the best solution. If I didn’t want to support her why would I
come here?” asked Harry in a soft voice.

“We didn’t mean that but come on Harry! Abortion is the way adopted by people who sleep with a
different person everyday. Not by a couple who’ve lived together for a year and a half,” said Luna.
Harry turned to Ron.

“What would you do if Luna got pregnant?” he asked.

“First of all we’d get married. I’m sure that’s not a problem for you. Our jobs are such that we
could apply for leave easily. Luna is a journalist in her father’s newspaper. So she wouldn’t have
any problem. I’m a private businessman, so I can easily leave the work to some of the others if I’m
needed at home. Unlike you and Hermione we are no longer students. I guess that is an advantage in
such a situation,” replied Ron.

“That’s exactly it! I and Hermione don’t have that privilege. All our work of the past year and
a half would be wasted if we were to take leave,” said Harry exasperated.

“Whatever the case is Harry, abortion is definitely not on. We can only tell you what we feel.
The final decision lies with you and Hermione,” said Luna. Harry was getting very drowsy due to his
lack of sleep.

“Do you think I could crash in here? Neither of us slept a minute last night. I don’t feel like
going home at the moment,” said Harry. Luna showed him the way to the guestroom. Harry slept
soundly due to his extreme weariness. He slept till late evening. When he woke up he came back to
reality. He still didn’t know what to do. Ron asked him to stay over for supper. He agreed.

“Ron, what would be your plan of action if you were in exactly my position? Like in job,
financial situation etc.” asked Harry still wanting to make Ron see his way.

“If you want to work through anything it can be done. Talk to the head of the auror department.
Tell him your problem. See what he suggests. I don’t think your financial situation is as bad as
you make it out to be but if it is take a loan. Don’t let pride get in your way. I know you too
well. Deep down you want to experience fatherhood,” replied Ron.

“Of course I want to. If only our logistics were better,” said Harry. Despite all talks Harry
was unable to decide anything. When he reached home Hermione was already asleep. That was a slight
relief to him because he didn’t know how to act around her.

Hermione had spent the previous day deciding what was to be done next. Though Harry had not left
any note she knew he would have gone to Ron’s. When she woke up in the morning she felt restless.
Harry was still sleeping. She quickly had some breakfast. She headed to the Burrow to have a talk
with Ginny. As she entered Ginny’s room she saw that Neville was with her.

“Oops, I’m sorry to disturb,” said Hermione. Thankfully the two of them weren’t snogging.

“I was expecting you. Ron told me all that has happened. I guess you want to talk. I hope
Neville being here is okay,” said Ginny. Hermione nodded.

“Since you know everything, do you think I’m doing the right thing?” asked Hermione.

“I can say that without doubt. In fact I’m still in shock over what Harry suggested. How come
you had agreed to it initially?” said Ginny.

“I didn’t think about it. Once Dr. Bones showed me the visuals and told me the details, there
was no way I could go through it,” replied Hermione.

“Harry’s suggesting an abortion is very uncharacteristic of him. I always thought he wanted to
have a family. I don’t understand why he is bringing in this rubbish about logistics,” added
Neville.

“He does have a point but killing the child is certainly not the solution to that,” said
Hermione.

“If I and Ginny were in the same position, I’d live on the streets but have the baby. I’d
sacrifice everything to keep Ginny and the baby safe,” said Neville angrily. Ginny looked at him
gratefully.

“Thanks Neville. I know you would. My feeling is Harry will come to his senses soon enough. This
was a shock to him and he may have got scared. He’ll get used to it with time. The Harry I know
would never desert Hermione,” said Ginny.

“He’s not deserted me Ginny. We just haven’t reached an acceptable solution yet,” said Hermione
quickly. Despite what had happened she didn’t want the others to think badly of Harry.

“Don’t worry! Things will be okay,” said Ginny in a hopeful voice. Hermione spent the day at the
Burrow not wanting to face Harry yet. They would be getting back to university and training the
next day. Perhaps that would help Harry to change his attitude. She deliberately timed her reaching
home to make sure Harry would be in bed.

The next few days passed. Harry and Hermione were living in the same house but spoke very
rarely. Both busied themselves with work to keep their mind off these affairs. It wasn’t working.
They missed each other terribly. Especially while going to bed in the nights. Their time at home
was spent in a very lonely manner. They wanted to talk but were afraid the other wouldn’t want to.
They had never been so awkward around each other. Hermione had another worry. She hadn’t told her
parents about the pregnancy. Soon she would start showing. She certainly couldn’t tell them without
Harry by her side. She expected them to be angry to start with but like always they’d support
her.

However during the weekend they had to be together. They had managed to avoid each other on
Saturday but on Sunday both of them needed to stay at home as Bill and Fleur were coming for a
visit. They had a one year old daughter named Celina. Harry welcomed them at the door.

“Hello, so nice to have you here,” he said.

“Long time, no see Harry,” said Bill, coming in. Fleur who was carrying Celina followed. Harry
stared at her in awe.

“My word! She’s grown up so much,” he exclaimed. Hermione came into the room and her reaction
was similar.

“Yes she has. It’s been wonderful seeing her grow through this year. I remember she used to be
tiny. Have a look at her now!” said Fleur happily. This time Harry and Hermione turned to Fleur in
amazement.

“What’s happened to your accent?” asked Hermione.

“I’ve done well, haven’t I? I’ve been in England for a few years now. Bill has taught me well,”
replied Fleur. “As I was saying, it’s been a great experience to see Celina grow up. Initially it
was tiring but later I understood what a pleasure it is. Of course Bill comes home late, so he gets
none of it,” said Fleur.

“Duty calls! But don’t say I don’t get any of it. When I come home all tired and she wraps her
palm around my finger, I feel all the tiredness ebbing away. It feels truly great,” said Bill.
Harry wondered if Bill and Fleur were deliberately talking about Celina in front of them. He tried
to change the subject.

“So any of you following Quidditch?” he asked.

“No, don’t have time for that. I guess the Canons have finally started winning a few. Ron must
be happy,” replied Bill. Fleur sat by Hermione.

“Look at these photos of Celina. This one is just after birth,” she said to Hermione. Hermione
kept looking at the photos as Fleur explained.

“This is when she sat up for the first time”

“This is her first smile”

“This one is at Ginny’s birthday. Proud aunt she is. Look at her holding the tiny one”

“Finally this is just the three of us. One happy family,” she finished. Hermione kept staring at
the last photo for a long time.

“Excuse me,” she said getting up. Fleur knew how Hermione would be feeling at the moment. She
followed her. Bill took his chance and showed the photos to Harry. Harry too was quite moved at the
affection Bill and Fleur had towards Celina.

“So how are you dealing with Hermione’s pregnancy?” asked Bill at last.

“We still don’t know how to deal with it. Hermione wants to keep the child but I can’t imagine
how we can do that,” said Harry thoughtfully.

“There may be a few problems but the happiness you get out makes up more than enough. I wasn’t
exaggerating when I was talking about Celina. I’m just waiting for the day she calls me ‘Daddy’ or
‘Dada’ or anything else. That’ll be the proudest moment of my life. Fleur feels the same way. It’s
too good for words,” said Bill.

“What if I can’t be a good father to my child? He or she’ll hate me,” said Harry.

“Initially you will make a few mistakes but you’ll learn with time. Believe me. I’m experienced
in this department. I don’t regret a minute I spent with Celina. Whether it is changing her nappies
or cleaning up a mess or putting her to sleep or listening to her crying, all have been special,”
said Bill. Fleur and Hermione returned. Hermione’s eyes were visibly red. Bill, Fleur and Celina
sat for a couple of hours before leaving.

Harry thought about all that Bill and Fleur had said. They seemed very happy parents. They loved
Celina blindly. He wished he could have something like that. But he had his whole life to
experience fatherhood. Bringing it on quickly could be a disaster. The debate continued in his
head. On one hand Bill’s words were ringing but one the other the fear of not being able to cope
with the situation was stopping him. He wished there was someone to advice him on this matter. He
missed his parents and Sirius at this point.

Hermione was feeling no better. Over the past few days she had been wondering if she should give
in to Harry. But after her conversation with Fleur her resolve to keep the baby increased several
folds. She wished Harry would be moved by what he saw with Bill and Fleur. Suddenly her mood
changed to anger at Harry. Why was he putting her through this? She saw a photo of the Quidditch
World Cup on the wall. The room she was staying in had been decorated according to Harry’s choice.
She forced the photo out of the wall and banged it to the floor.

Harry heard the noise and rushed upstairs. The sight of one of his favorite photo destroyed
enraged him.

“What do you think you are doing?” he shouted.

“Since I’m living in this room, I should decide what has to be here,” shouted back Hermione.
Harry lost his temper.

“If you hate my presence so much, I’ll just leave the house. Then you can enjoy all you want!”
said Harry and started to walk towards the front door. Hermione tensed. Could he be leaving for
good? That would be the nail in the coffin.

“When will you come back?” she asked running after him.

“I’ll be late! Don’t worry; you won’t have to bear my presence. I’ll make sure I return after
you are asleep,” he shouted back. He was walking aimlessly. Finally he decided to go to Neville’s
place. He didn’t want to bother Ron and Luna again.

“Hi,” said Neville coldly as Harry walked in.

“Can I talk to you,” Harry asked.

“What’s there to talk in this, Harry? You know what my answer will be. What you are doing with
Hermione is very wrong,” replied Neville.

“It’s not just that,” said Harry and explained about his latest row with Hermione. Neville’s
face was grim throughout.

“Have you two officially broken up,” asked Neville.

“Are you mad? How can you say that! This is just a phase we need to get over. I want to make the
correct decision. We don’t talk very much but the feelings are most definitely in here and I’m sure
Hermione feels the same way. I love her as much as before. Nothing can change that,” said
Harry.

“You two are living in the same house,” commented Neville.

“That’s what’s keeping us together. The day one of us leaves the house for good; it’ll be the
end for us. I noticed the fear in Hermione’s voice when I said I was leaving. I just can’t decide
what to do. The scales are still tilted towards abortion,” said Harry.

“Then I have nothing to say to you,” replied Neville.

“Why aren’t any of you taking my side? I do have an important point,” asked Harry.

“Harry you have to believe us. It’s not often you are in such a minority. Especially amongst
your friends. Can’t you see that Hermione, Ron, Luna, Me, Ginny, Bill, Fleur and all the others
feel the same way? Surely all of us aren’t wrong,” replied Neville.

“But you….Wait! How did you know about Bill and Fleur?” asked Harry. Neville turned red.

“Don’t get mad. I and Ron asked them to go and have a talk with the two of you. We thought it’ll
help you to see the happiness parenthood brings,” answered Neville.

“I’m not mad. I’m my own man and take my own decisions! However at the moment I’m terribly
failing at that!” said Harry.



22. Love Can't Die
------------------

**A/N: It’s been ten days since the last update. I’ve been really busy with an interview, so
the delay. Sorry for that. I hope the last chapter explained some of Harry’s uncharacteristic
behavior. I know it was lame but one can’t be perfect all the time. Besides if Harry had a valid
excuse the problem would not have got solved. As a result of the long delay the last chapter got
the maximum number of reviews. Thank you for those. Some of you were really put off by Harry’s
behavior. I request all of you to stick with the story.**

**This is the second last chapter though some of you may feel this is the end. As promised this
is a ‘slightly’ more positive chapter. At least to start with! Another apology for failing to
answer all the reviews. I’ll answer them as soon as I can. Please keep up the tremendous response.
About the next chapter – I’ll try my best to post it within the next three or four days. If I can’t
it’ll have to wait till the seventh of April. So please be patient. Happy reading!**

Chapter Twenty-Two: Love Can’t Die

The following week failed to improve Harry and Hermione’s situation. Still none of them was able
to come up with any solution to their problem. This meant they were barely talking to each other.
This had adverse effect on their temperaments. Both of them were frustrated and tended to get
angry. Though none of them had blown up yet, things were quite tense. It was Monday. Harry for once
had finished training early. Hermione was not home yet. Harry decided to quickly have a meal before
she returned. He had just finished cooking and had sat down at the table when he heard the front
door click.

“Oh I didn’t know you’d be home soon,” she said stiffly coming into the kitchen. She really
looked knackered. She saw the food on the table.

“Do you think I could have some of that? I’m really tired after a full working day,” she asked.
Harry looked at her blankly.

“Is that anything to ask? Everything in this house is yours including the food,” replied Harry.
Hermione set down on the table. Harry saw her face and felt sorry. Despite being pregnant she was
attending her classes without any complains.

“Are you alright?” he asked.

“I’m managing… what do you care?” said Hermione.

“I care about you Hermione. Whatever is my viewpoint about the baby, it doesn’t change what I
have for you,” replied Harry sounding hurt.

“Sorry! I’m managing as well as can be expected,” she said. They continued eating.

“How have your classes been going?” asked Harry trying to keep the conversation going.

“They’re fine. Harry, why are we acting as if we’ve never spoken before?” said Hermione.

“I don’t know. The last two weeks are showing its effects. It hasn’t been easy. I’ve missed
you,” said Harry. They had finished eating and were sitting in the living room.

“I’ve missed you too,” replied Hermione. They moved closer. Before he knew what he was doing,
Harry’s lips were on Hermione’s. She returned the kiss with equal passion. They kept kissing for a
couple of minutes before Hermione pulled away abruptly.

“We can’t do this. Not until we’ve taken a firm decision on the baby,” said Hermione walking
away.

“Hermione wait,” shouted Harry going after her.

“I’m really tired Harry. I’d like to go to bed. I’ll see you tomorrow,” said Hermione and went
into her bedroom. Harry didn’t bother her. He sat in the living room for the next one hour thinking
what could be done. Finally he too was ready for bed. Just as he was about to enter his room he saw
the sleeping form of Hermione through her door which was slightly ajar. He couldn’t help walking
into her room. Her covering was falling off her. Carefully he tucked her in.

“Sleep well my love! I love you,” he whispered.

The next morning was not as tense as usual. Harry was having his breakfast when Hermione came up
to him.

“Harry, I’d had decided not to ask any favor from you regarding the baby until you are ready to
accept it, but there are some papers you need to sign. Dr. Bones has told this to me for a long
time and I’ve tried to put it off every time. Now it’s really getting late. So could you visit her
on your way back from work and sign the required papers?” asked Hermione.

“Alright,” replied Harry uncomfortably.

When he had finished his work, Harry went to St. Mungo’s. Dr. Bones was not in her room. Instead
he found Susan there.

“Hi Harry! Mum was expecting you sometime,” she said warmly.

“Hi Susan! I’ve come to sign the required papers for my… er… the baby,” replied Harry.

“I’m sorry but Mum had an emergency call. Why don’t you wait here? I don’t think it’ll take very
long,” said Susan. Harry sat down next to her.

“So how have you been? You must be looking forward to fatherhood. I can’t believe one of us, two
in fact, are going to be parents,” said Susan conversationally.

“Er… yeah!” replied Harry shortly. Susan looked at him in surprise.

“I think the pressure of being a father is getting to you. I have an idea. Mum recorded
Hermione’s ultrasounds in a CD. You can view it here. You’ll actually be able to see your progeny,”
said Susan. Harry wanted to protest but his curiosity got the better of him. The first visual was
the one taken on the day Hermione discovered she was pregnant. It was a zoomed in version.

“You can clearly make out the head and the limbs. That is the umbilical chord from which
nutrition reaches the baby,” explained Susan. Harry stared in amazement. It was actually a person
inside Hermione. He could clearly make that out.

“You’ll see how the fetus has developed in this one month later on. It’s amazing how fast pre
birth growth takes place. Now in the next visual you’ll see the zoomed out version. That’ll show
all of them,” said Susan. Before Harry had a chance to question Susan, the next visual appeared.
Harry gaped at what he saw. No it couldn’t be. There had to be some mistake. There were… not one…
not two but three fetuses. Was it the same one taken from different angles?

“Are all three of them mine?” he asked stupidly.

“Oh dear! Hermione will kill me. She was probably planning to surprise you with the news of
triplets,” sighed Susan.

“Triplets?” questioned Harry blankly.

“I guess I can’t hide it anymore. Yes you are going to have triplets. I have to apologize to
Hermione sometime,” said Susan. Harry watched the rest of the visuals dumbfounded. There were three
babies inside Hermione. Unlike he had imagined they were very much alive. He slowly started
understanding Hermione’s reasons for keeping the babies. He was now feeling guilty.

“Susan can I talk to you about something?” he asked.

“Sure Harry! What’s bothering you?” replied Susan. Harry told her the entire story about him
suggesting the abortion, Hermione refusing, their silence and finally his feelings after seeing the
visuals.

“But Harry, this is so unlike you! I thought you were one of the bravest people around,” said
Susan.

“I know it was my mistake. For once my Gryffindor courage deserted me. I tried to take the easy
way out instead of facing what was coming up. Hermione has been right all along. I’ve been an idiot
but I’m not scared anymore. And I have you to thank for this. Had you not shown me the visuals, I
would have remained an idiot. I really owe this to you,” said Harry. He hugged Susan and pecked her
on the cheek. Precisely at that moment the door opened and Hermione stiffened.

“Sorry to interrupt,” she said and left the room.

“Oh Harry, that was probably the worst thing that could have happened,” said Susan.

“Don’t worry. I know Hermione. I’m sure she’ll understand when I explain things to her,” replied
Harry more confidently than he felt. He was about to leave when Dr. Bones came into the room. She
got Harry to sign the required papers. As he signed, for the first time he felt proud of being a
father. He felt as though he was responsible for someone else.

As he got out of St. Mungo’s, he saw a shopping complex some distance away. He walked towards it
and made his ways to the jeweler’s store. He was going to propose. He thought about what type of
ring Hermione would like. He knew that it was the love which mattered, not the ring. Yet he wanted
something special. The financial problems prevented him from getting anything too expensive. He
looked at a few. Unfortunately the ones he liked were all diamond rings and hence quite expensive.
Finally he made his choice. The diamond in the ring was quite small. So the cost was relatively
less. He held the ring up. It looked perfect. He bought it without hesitation.

He had expected Hermione to be at home, probably locked up in her room. However when he got
home, she wasn’t there. He waited for her. An hour passed. He started to get worried. She was never
this late. Surely she couldn’t have left after seeing him and Susan. She had been so understanding
when a similar thing with Luna was publicized by Cho. She would at least have spoken to him. He
called up all his friends to see if they knew anything. None of them did. Ron, Luna, Neville,
Seamus and Parvati came over to Peaceden. They all set out in different directions to look for
Hermione. They searched for forty five minutes without any luck. Finally everybody was back home.
Ron was getting frantic. Harry was trying to keep calm. He was trying to think rationally.

“I’ve got it. I know where she is. She has to be there. I have been a fool not to think about it
before. She’ll be at the library. She always hides herself there when she’s mentally unhappy,” said
Harry. The others offered to come with him but Harry told them to go back home. They agreed
reluctantly.

Harry walked down to the library. He was very confident that Hermione would be in there. He
searched the library. Hermione was sitting with her head in her hands. A book was lying open in
front of her. Harry felt sorry for her. He gently put a hand on her shoulder. She looked up. Her
face was expressionless.

“What are you doing here? Shouldn’t you be with Susan?” she asked softly. Harry sat down
opposite her.

“Hermione you saw all those photos of me and Luna at Hogwarts. What you saw today was nowhere
near as bad as that. You trusted me without hesitation at that time. Then what happened now? Have I
lost your trust?” countered Harry in a low voice. A few people were staring at them. Harry took
Hermione’s hand and walked out of the library. Hermione didn’t protest. They apparated to Peaceden
which was empty now.

“Okay as I was saying, where has our mutual trust gone?” asked Harry.

“I don’t know. I do trust you but after last night… I pushed you away during an intimate moment.
Maybe that frustrated you. When I saw you with Susan today, I thought as if you were trying to
substitute me with her. I think I was wrong,” replied Hermione.

“Hermione how can you think that? You know very well that no one can replace you. I wouldn’t
replace you for anything. It was just a friendly peck on the cheek with Susan. And that too for
very good reason,” said Harry exasperated.

“What reason?” asked Hermione quickly.

“She showed me what an idiot I’d been,” replied Harry uncomfortably. He wasn’t looking forward
to this part. He was dreading accepting his mistake. Hermione looked up at him. Could it be what
she was thinking? Harry saw the question in her eyes and nodded. For the first time in a long time
Hermione smiled. Harry embraced her.

“I’m so sorry Hermione. You were right all the way. It took me so long to realize what a mistake
I was making. Killing the babies is as bad as killing Voldemort. If only I’d realized this sooner,
we could have avoided this standoff,” said Harry. Hermione was too happy to notice that Harry had
said ‘babies’.

“I knew you’d come around Harry. That’s why I was so stubborn. Since you’ve changed your mind,
all is forgiven. We have a new life to look forward to. I’m glad we’re in this together. I couldn’t
have gone through this alone,” replied Hermione.

“Like you, the visuals changed my mind. The head, the limbs and the body all were like us. There
is life inside you. It’s going to be out soon,” exclaimed Harry excitedly.

“Harry, there is one more thing you should know. You were concerned about money. What I’m about
to say will be a shock on that front….,” she was cut off by Harry.

“That the happiness would be three times,” completed Harry. Hermione gaped at him.

“Susan showed me all three of them. I’ve already thought of how to manage the finances. It’s a
tough decision but it has to be taken. I’m going to sell Grimmauld Place,” said Harry.

“But that’s the last bit of Sirius you have left,” objected Hermione.

“No, I have plenty of happy memories and photos. Anyway I hate that place. If I’d liked it, we
would have moved in there instead of spending so much money on this place. When it comes down to
something I hate and the welfare of my children, I choose the latter. That’s fair enough,” said
Harry.

“Oh Harry! Everything is perfect. Finally!” said Hermione happily.

“So let’s celebrate by doing a little shopping for the little ones,” suggested Harry. Hermione
agreed happily. They apparated to London. They started with the cribs. They’d need three of
them.

“Initially they’ll have to be in our room. When they are slightly grown up we can move the cribs
to the nursery. One of the guestrooms has to be turned into a nursery,” said Harry.

“That’s fine. Shall we get identical cribs for all of them? Or will different colors look
nicer?” asked Hermione.

“As long as all of them are equally comfortable it doesn’t matter. Let’s take identical ones
now. With magic, we can change colors anytime,” replied Harry. Hermione rested her head on his
shoulder.

“I’m so glad we’re back to what we were before. Though we had never broken up officially, it
felt as if we had,” said Hermione.

“You described my thoughts. I guess staying in the same house was the saving grace. If either of
us had walked out, things could have been worse,” commented Harry.

“I know that. I thought since you were staying, you wanted us to be together. I wanted that too.
So I stayed. It turned out to be a wise decision,” said Hermione.

“You aren’t the brightest witch of our age for nothing!” exclaimed Harry, hugging her. They
bought cribs, a few clothes and toys, a large playpen and a maternity gown for Hermione. This was a
wizarding market so they shrunk everything to tiny packages.

“There is one thing we need to do. My parents need to be told. I’ve already put it off for so
long. I wanted to do the honors with you by my side. No doubt they won’t be happy but they’ll stand
by us,” said Harry. Harry felt slightly scared at the proposition but agreed. They apparated
outside the Granger’s residence.

“This is a pleasant surprise,” said Diana welcoming them at the door. Within ten minutes all of
them were seated in the living room with cups of coffee in their hands.

“Mum, dad there is something we need to tell you,” started Hermione nervously.

“What is it sweetheart?” asked Robert kindly.

“I’m pregnant,” said Hermione quickly.

“What! But you are just twenty. Hadn’t we warned you to take precautions?” asked Robert,
shocked.

“We took every precaution but it still happened. We didn’t ask for it,” replied Harry
quietly.

“This is a difficult situation to be in. How have you planned the future?” asked Diana,
recovering first.

“I will stand by Hermione at every step. We’re both in it together and will face it together,”
answered Harry. Robert seemed impressed by the answer. He was about to ask about marriage but
stopped himself.

“Not that I’m very happy about this but I must admit that I can’t wait to see my grandchild,” he
said. Hermione looked relieved. She was about to hug her father when he realized that Robert had
said ‘grandchild’. Her smile faltered.

“There is something else. We’re going to have triplets,” she said. Robert and Diana had barely
recovered from one shock when another came.

“Triplets! That makes things very tough indeed,” said Diana.

“How will you manage? One or both of you will have to stop your education. Now that you’ve
bought that large house, you wouldn’t have much savings. Money will be very tight. Perhaps you
could borrow some from us,” said Robert.

“That’s very kind of you Dr. Granger but I have it planned out. I’m going to sell my godfather’s
old house. Both Hermione and I will speak at our institutes and see what can be done with our
education. I’m hoping we’ll be able to work out something on that front. However at the moment
money will not be a problem,” replied Harry. Robert and Diana were again impressed by Harry’s
maturity.

“If that’s what you feel the go ahead. Just remember we are always there. Never fear to ask us
for any help,” said Diana kindly. This time Hermione was truly relieved. She hugged both her
parents. Harry shook hands with them.

“I don’t want to cook anything after such a long day. Let’s eat out today. We have reason to
celebrate,” said Harry, once they were back home.

“That’s a good idea. Where do you want to eat?” asked Hermione replied. Harry quickly thought
out a plan.

“Today you will decide. I’ve been an ass over this whole issue and I want to make it up. We’ll
eat where you want,” said Harry.

“You already know what I like. Indian of course. But today food is not going to be the main
attraction. We are going out together after such a long time. That holds most importance,” said
Hermione.

“Yes the food is definitely not the main attraction today,” said Harry to himself, fingering the
ring in his pocket.

“You’re saying something Harry?” asked Hermione noticing the movements of his lips.

“No, I didn’t say anything,” replied Harry innocently. Though he knew Hermione’s answer, he
couldn’t help feeling nervous. Both of them quickly got dressed.

The restaurant was relatively empty. Harry was glad for this. They had their usual Indian
dishes. They ate happily. Hermione noticed that Harry was eating less than usual.

“Is your stomach alright? You’ve barely eaten anything,” said Hermione.

“Hermione, just because you are eating for four doesn’t mean that I have to do so as well,”
joked Harry trying to release his tension. Hermione laughed but wasn’t convinced. They decided to
have ice creams after the meal. Harry was waiting for the perfect moment.

“This has been a great day. So much has happened. You saw the visuals of the babies, changed
your mind, I saw you kissing Susan, hid in the library, you looked all around for me, found me in
the library, we made up, did shopping for the little ones, told mum and dad who were as supportive
as ever and finally this lovely meal,” said Hermione. Harry knew his opening had arrived.

“How do you know nothing more will happen? You stopped at the ‘lovely meal’,” asked Harry
cheekily.

“What more can happen? We can have a snogging session but that’s nothing new,” replied
Hermione.

“There is still some time left in the day. Something more than that can surely happen,”
continued Harry.

“Why are you playing games with me Harry? Please be serious,” said Hermione.

“As you wish. Hermione you know I love you very much. I can’t imagine life without you. My day
is incomplete if you aren’t in it. I don’t want any days of my life to remain incomplete. I want to
spend each and every day of my life with you. Hermione Granger, will you marry me?” Harry asked
bending on one knee and taking the ring out of his pocket.

Hermione first gasped and then smiled. She was expecting Harry to propose sometime very soon but
not so soon.

“Of course Harry,” she almost shouted and jumped into his arms. Harry let out a sigh of
contentment as he placed the ring around Hermione’s fingers.



23. Legendary Love
------------------

**A/N: Here it is! The final chapter. It has been a long journey for all of us but it had to
end sometime. I would have liked to continue this but my busy schedule has forced me to call it
quits. I’ve enjoyed every bit of it. I’m going to miss writing. Though the story ends here I may
post ‘some stuff’ later on. Thanks to all the reviewers of the last chapter. For those who asked,
there will be no sequel. Sorry about that.**

**This chapter has plenty of jumps in time. Please keep them in mind. It starts with Harry and
Hermione’s wedding night. Those of you who wanted a description of the post engagement and the
actual marriage will be disappointed. Those who wanted to meet the triplets will get plenty of it
and even more. For the last time I’m asking… PLEASE REVIEW. I promise not to bug you guys after
this. So for the final time… Happy reading! Hope you enjoyed the story!**

Chapter Twenty-Three: Legendary Love

“I can’t believe it. We’re married,” said Hermione happily, as they entered their bedroom. The
ceremony had been magnificent. Ron was the best man while Ginny was the bridesmaid. They had tears
in their eyes during the exchange of rings.

“You’re stuck with me for life now,” said Harry while kissing her deeply.

“I’m more than prepared for that Mr. Potter,” replied Hermione.

“You better be, Mrs. Potter. Wow, it feels great to call you that!” remarked Harry.

“This has been the happiest day of my life. Marriage is not much of a change for us. It won’t
change our life or relationship drastically. Yet it feels different, for the better. Just knowing
we’re ‘officially’ together,” said Hermione.

“You looked awesome in that gown. Not a soul could have guessed you are seven months pregnant
with triplets. My breath got caught in the throat the moment I saw you,” commented Harry.

“I was slightly nervous but when I saw you it disappeared. Last night I kept feeling something
would go wrong. I guess they were jitters,” said Hermione.

“It’s a pity we can’t celebrate our wedding night in bed. One of the very few disadvantages of
your being pregnant. However the advantages outweigh them easily,” said Harry.

“We’ll have plenty of time to make it up. Look at you being such a happy father. Who’ll say you
didn’t want to have the babies?” questioned Hermione jokingly but Harry tensed.

“Please don’t remind me of that. I was a total jerk at that time. Thanks to Susan I came around.
Otherwise I could have lost you and the babies for good. I want to forget that phase of my life,”
he said stiffly. Hermione put her arm on his shoulder.

“That is behind us Harry. We all learn from our mistakes. You’ve done well after that. We both
have. The finances are stable as Grimmauld Place is sold. I’ve got a two year leave sanctioned. Due
to my good academic record I’ll be able to rejoin where I left off. You’ll get six months off
provided you keep up your physical fitness. We can both share the workload at home. Managing three
of them won’t be an easy task,” said Hermione trying to soothe him.

“Hermione I have one request. We’ll never tell the children that I’d suggested an abortion. Only
our close friends know about it. We’ll ask them to keep quiet. I don’t want the children to hate
me. I’m really ashamed of my behavior at that time,” said Harry.

“Okay we won’t tell them. But let’s not discuss such things on our wedding night. This is the
happiest day of our lives. My pregnancy prevents us from being intimate but let’s keep the mood
up,” suggested Hermione.

“So you don’t mind not going for a honeymoon?” asked Harry.

“Not at all! We couldn’t have gone on a honeymoon at this time. Unfortunately it’ll have to wait
for quite long while. We can’t go once the children are born. It’ll be four or five years before we
can go on a honeymoon. We can’t leave all three of them with anyone. It wouldn’t be fair. However
this is no less than any honeymoon,” replied Hermione. They were totally satisfied with the day.
They slept peacefully, for the first time as husband and wife.

**** **** **** ****

SIX WEEKS LATER

**** **** **** ****

“Aaaaaah!” screamed Hermione, as a contraction swept over her. Her nails were digging into
Harry’s wrists. Harry looked expectantly towards Dr. Bones.

“I think she’s ready,” said Dr. Bones. “Okay Hermione, now you’ve got to push. It’ll take some
effort but that’s how it is,” she added. Harry wiped the sweat off Hermione’s forehead. Hermione
started pushing. Dr. Bones kept encouraging her.

“One last time, it’s almost there,” she urged. Within a minute Dr. Bones was holding tiny but
healthy baby girl. Hermione tried to smile but another contraction prevented her from doing so. Dr.
Bones handed the baby to a nurse.

“How long will it take for the next one?” asked Harry seeing the pain Hermione was in.

“It varies between five and thirty minutes,” replied Dr. Bones. Luckily for them it took only
ten minutes. It was a boy this time. Hermione really looked knackered.

“I can’t do it anymore,” she said softly.

“Just one more. Everything has gone smoothly. You can do this,” said Harry. Dr. Bones kept
reassuring them everything was alright.

Finally after fifteen minutes, a baby girl was born. At last Hermione was able to smile. All the
babies were healthy despite being two weeks premature. Harry held onto Hermione’s hand.

“We are parents,” he said kissing her.

“I know but I’m really tired,” replied Hermione.

“You take a nap. I’ll go outside and tell the news to everybody. They’ve been waiting a long
time,” said Harry tucking her in. He went outside the maternity room. There was a whole crowd
waiting outside including Robert, Diana, Molly, Arthur, Ron, Luna, Ginny, Neville and many
more.

“We are proud parents of two girls and a boy,” announced Harry. Everybody congratulated him and
inundated him with questions.

It was late in the evening. Everybody had left the hospital. Harry was sitting by Hermione, who
was still asleep. Three small cribs were besides Hermione. The babies were fast asleep in them.
Hermione’s eyes fluttered open.

“Hi, had a nice nap?” asked Harry.

“Yes I did. Can I see them?” said Hermione.

“Just look to your left,” said Harry with a smile. As Hermione saw the three babies her eyes
filled with tears.

“They’re so cute,” she whispered. Both of them kept looking at the babies. Harry broke the
silence.

“If you’re up to it, can we decide the names?” he asked. Hermione nodded.

“I don’t think we should name them after any of our parents. Those can be the second names. How
does Christine Lily sound?” said Harry.

“That’s sweet. So that’s decided which leaves the other two. I was thinking of Adrian and
Catherine. Adrian James and Catherine Diane,” said Hermione.

“Wow you certainly came up with great names. They aren’t very uncommon but seem to suit them. If
we have another one, we’ll name it after your dad,” replied Harry.

“So Christine, Adrian and Catherine they are. Coincidently the sisters have similar names,”
remarked Hermione.

“One more thing remains. Who do we make the godparents? Ron is the obvious choice for godfather.
For godmother should it be Luna or Ginny?” asked Harry.

“Since Ron will be godfather, Luna is the obvious choice for godmother. I don’t think Ginny will
mind,” replied Hermione.

“That’s fine by me. The Potter family is expanding. I’m glad it happened with you,” said Harry
happily.

Two days later the five of them were returning to Peaceden. Robert and Diana were going to help
them as carrying three babies would be tough. Harry opened the front door as Hermione, Robert and
Diana were holding the three babies.

“Welcome home kiddies! This is where you’ll be staying. Let’s show you your nursery,” said Harry
looking at Christine.

“Come on Harry, they can’t hear you. Perhaps we should take them to their cribs first, which are
in our room,” suggested Hermione. Precisely at that moment Catherine opened her eyes.

“Did you see that? She heard and understood every word I said. Let’s take them to the nursery,”
said Harry excitedly.

“Harry you are incorrigible! You were looking at Christine, not Catherine. Anyway if you wish we
can go to the nursery,” replied Hermione. Together they walked t the nursery. Harry tried to show
some toys to Adrian but Hermione wouldn’t have any of it.

“Harry there is cotton in that teddy bear! It may cause an allergic reaction. I’m taking them to
our bedroom,” said Hermione and carried Adrian to the bedroom. Robert and Diana followed with
Christine and Catherine.

Hermione’s parents stayed till the evening as Harry had to go to the Ministry to finalize his
leave. He came back satisfied. He had been granted leave for three months with an option to extend
it by three more if required. He had also been offered a part time job as the seeker of the
Puddlemere United reserve squad. The coach felt that with his skills Harry wouldn’t need much
practice. He could only turn up for the matches. However Harry had declined the offer. Since money
was no longer an issue he wanted to focus all his attention in helping Hermione with the kids. That
night Harry and Hermione sat on their bed.

“I was quite childish when we came is, wasn’t I? I don’t want to be a bad father. I was just
excited,” said Harry.

“It’s alright Harry. Both of us will get better with time. Though getting the teddy bear was
irresponsible, the welcome was quite cute,” replied Hermione.

“Just look at the three of them! I couldn’t have asked for anything better than this. You, me
and the kids! I’m willing to face all the tough moments with raising the kids for moments like
this,” said Harry embracing Hermione.

“It’s simply great,” replied Hermione.

**** **** **** **** **** ****

FOURTEEN YEARS LATER

**** **** **** **** **** ****

Six year old Nicholas Robert Potter was waiting excitedly at King Cross’ station with her
parents. Today was a big day for him as his older siblings Christine, Adrian and Catherine were
returning from Hogwarts after finishing their third year. He had been counting days off late.

“Daddy why isn’t the train coming?” asked Nicholas impatiently.

“It’s not time yet Nick. They’ll be here very soon,” replied Harry. This was the sixth time he
was asking this question.

“There it comes!” said Hermione to Nick. Nick started jumping with his finger pointed at the
train. Harry and Hermione watched with amused expressions. The triplets got down from the train.
Nick ran towards them. He hugged Adrian.

“Hi little man, I’ve missed you,” greeted Adrian. Catherine joined the group and ruffled Nick’s
hair. Hermione walked ahead to greet her children. Harry noticed Christine talking to a boy of
about her age. She hadn’t greeted them yet. When she finally came to join them Harry spoke to
her.

“Who was that bloke?” he asked.

“Dad you haven’t yet said hi to me,” protested Christine blushing a bit. Catherine and Adrian
giggled.

“Hi Christine, but you still have to answer my question,” said Harry impressed at Christine’s
effort to change the subject.

“Just a friend of mine,” replied Christine shortly. Adrian sniggered softly. Christine glared
towards him.

“I didn’t miss that. I know there is something more,” said Harry. Hermione tried to intervene
but Christine spoke before that.

“Fine! His name is Henry. He is French. In school everybody makes fun of him because of his
accent. So I try to be nice to him,” answered Christine.

“Harry, we can trust Christine on this,” said Hermione trying to divert both their
attention.

“You aren’t dating, are you? You are just fourteen,” pressed Harry. Christine blushed again. But
she also got angry.

“We’re not dating! We’ve gone to Hogsmede once and that’s it! And I’m not answering any more
questions. Ever since I’ve arrived you’ve just been quizzing me about Henry,” shouted Christine and
started walking away.

“Look what you’ve done! You’d better go and fix the mess you’ve created. We have to trust her on
what she’s saying,” said Hermione to Harry. Harry went after Christine. Hermione and Adrian
followed them. Catherine and Nick made up the rear.

“Is Henry Christine’s boyfriend?” asked Nick. Catherine laughed.

“Not yet but me and Adrian think that he might be soon. We feel Chris likes him. Don’t babble
this in front of Dad though he must have guessed most of it,” replied Catherine. Nick nodded.

Harry had apologized to Christine. So things were very peaceful at home. In the night all of
them sat up playing Exploding Snap. Nick was really enjoying the day. It was past his bedtime but
Harry and Hermione had let him stay up. He loved being with his siblings. After they finished
playing he and Adrian went into their room. Christine and Catherine went into theirs.

“So when will Christine and Henry become boyfriend and girlfriend?” asked Nick curiously. Adrian
was surprised.

“Who told you?” he asked.

“Catherine says that it may happen soon,” replied Nick. Adrian sighed.

“Nothing is certain yet. Both of them are just fourteen. That’s too young to start seeing each
other seriously. How come these things are interesting you? Boys of your age often hate the
opposite sex,” said Adrian.

“I’m just interested in my sister. So do you think they’ll get married when they are older?”
asked Nick innocently. Adrian coughed in amusement.

“Nick! Marriage is not like that. You have to love each other to get married. Wait… you wouldn’t
know what love is. It is…,” Adrian started thinking.

“I know! Love is like Daddy loves Mummy. Like Uncle Ron loves Aunt Luna. But Daddy is the best.
Nobody can love anyone more than Daddy loves Mummy,” said Nick loyally. Adrian laughed.

“That’s a good example but I don’t think anyone can describe love unless they fall in love. And
there is someone I know who could compete with Dad, when it comes to loving,” replied Adrian.

“No there isn’t. Who are you thinking about?” asked Nick.

“Mum. She loves Dad as much as he loves her,” answered Adrian. Both of them started
laughing.

“The best lovers! Mummy and Daddy,” announced Nick proudly.

In the next room Christine and Catherine were having an animated discussion about the events at
the station.

“You handled the situation with Dad well,” said Catherine.

“I would have handled it better if you and Adrian weren’t constantly giggling,” said
Christine.

“Come on Chris! It was funny from our point of view. Dad trying to be his usual protective self
and you trying to come up with answers. But it was too obvious. You blushed every time he was
mentioned,” said Catherine.

“There’s nothing like that Cathy! We’re just good friends. Okay… very good friends. I don’t know
why everyone is so horrid to him, specially the Slytherins’. I just try and be there for him,”
replied Christine.

“You are blushing so deeply that I can see it in the darkness. There’s no need to hide anything
from me. I won’t leak any information. You must be feeling something for him. The whole school
suspects something between you two,” urged Catherine.

“Alright, I’m happy whenever the two of us are together. I really enjoyed when the two of us
went to Hogsmede together. Sometimes my stomach flips when he smiles at me. He’s a very helpful
person and has a great personality. I don’t know what all this means but I’ve told you what I
feel,” said Christine. Catherine smiled.

“I’m as old as you. So I can’t tell you what this means. But judging by your actions I feel that
there is definitely something more than friendship between you two. I’m willing to bet that before
we finish our fourth year, he’ll be your boyfriend,” said Catherine.

“How can you be so sure?” asked Christine.

“I know you too well. You would have denied it outright if there wasn’t anything. I think Henry
feels the same way. Both of you have to realize it. Maybe you should have a talk with Mum sometime.
She’ll help you clear your doubts. Once Mum is okay with it, Dad will relent,” suggested
Catherine.

“I’ll do that. I think she’ll already know there is something going on,” replied Christine. Both
of them went to sleep satisfied.

The next day was a Sunday. The six of them had breakfast together. It was a wonderful for all of
them to start the day together after such a long time. Nick was the happiest of the lot.

“Daddy, can we play Quidditch?” he asked. The triplets immediately backed him up. They enjoyed
playing Quidditch with their father. Christine and Adrian were already in the Gryffindor Quidditch
team. Christine was the Seeker while Adrian was a Beater. Catherine who was the studious of the lot
wasn’t too bad either. She wasn’t naturally talented like the other two but Harry expected her to
make the team at some point. He had coached her to be a Chaser and was satisfied with the progress
she was making.

“Okay but Nick you’ll have to fly with me. You can’t take your toy broomstick to that height.
Me, Nick and Cathy will take on Chris and Adrian,” said Harry.

“Be careful with Nick Harry. He’s quite big now. You’ll have difficulty in controlling the
broom,” cautioned Hermione.

“Mum, you are speaking like a flying expert. Do you want to try and take a ride?” joked
Adrian.

“I’m not that bad. After being with Dad for so long, I’ve improved quite a bit. At least I can
remain steady on a broom,” said Hermione defending herself.

“Then play with us,” said Harry unexpectedly.

“Don’t be silly Harry! How can you expect…” started Hermione but was interrupted by her
children.

“Yeah Mum, play with us! Play with us!” they chorused together.

“Mum, please play with us,” joined in Harry. Hermione covered her ears in all the noise.

“Okay now listen! You all know very well if I take my hand off the broom to catch the quaffle
I’ll fall. So there’s no way I’m going to play. But I have a compromise. I’ll go up with you and be
the referee. How does that sound?” said Hermione.

“That’ll be fun! Let’s go,” said Catherine. All of them took their brooms and went to the back
lawns. The game was well contested. Finally Christine and Adrian emerged victorious only Harry was
having problem steering the broom with the ‘big’ Nick on it.

In the afternoon Nick was reading a book on great wizards. It was a children’s edition. His
mother had presented it to him on his last birthday. Christine and Catherine were with him. Adrian
was playing chess with Harry in the other room.

“Hey Cathy, what does this word mean?” asked Nick pointing to a word in the book.

“Legendary… it means something famous. Something which can’t be surpassed. As it says here ‘…the
legendary Albus Dumbledore…’ it means there were no wizards greater than Albus Dumbledore during
his age,” explained Catherine.

“Can you give me some examples?” asked Nick eagerly.

“Well there can be a legendary Quidditch player, a legendary wizard as you read and a legendary…
a legendary…hey Chris think of something which can be legendary,” said Catherine to Christine.

“Let me think,” said Christine.

“I know something which can be legendary,” said Nick sweetly.

“You do? What is it?” asked Christine.

“Love,” replied Nick. Christine and Catherine were confused.

“No Nick, love can’t be legendary. You don’t even know what love is. Neither do any of us,” said
Catherine.

“Yes it can be. Ask Adrian. He’ll know,” said Nick with a smile. To his delight Adrian entered
the room.

“Hey Adrian tell them how love can be legendary,” said Nick. Adrian looked taken aback but then
gave Nick a knowing smile.

“Well, it’s a long story. Last night I and Nick were discussing about Chris and Henry. Nick
asked if they were going to get married later in life. I told him you don’t get married until you
are in love. The discussion continued and both of us came to the conclusion that the ultimate love
is between Mum and Dad. That’s why he’s calling love legendary,” said Adrian.

“Yes Mummy and Daddy are not just in love but they are in legendary love,” said Nick loudly.
Christine and Catherine laughed.

“You’re so cute Nick. But I have to say you are right. I haven’t seen lover greater than Mum and
Dad’s,” said Christine.

“That makes them legendary lovers! We are the products of legendary love. So we should be famous
too,” said Catherine.

Harry and Hermione witnessed the entire scene from the door. Hermione had a few tears in her
eyes while Harry was broadly smiling. Quietly they moved away.

“So you like the title our children have given us? Legendary lovers indeed” asked Harry.

“I couldn’t imagine our children discussing our love. That is not what all children do. It was
so sweet,” replied Hermione.

“This makes our love all the more special. Though you may call me egoistic but they were right.
I legendary love you,” joked Harry.

“I love you too. May our love always remain Legendary”



24. Appendix
------------

**AN: Here is the ‘extra stuff’ that I’d promised to post earlier. It’s nothing much but I hope
you all will enjoy this bit of fun. I’m flattered by the response I’ve got on this story and this
my way to express my gratitude to all of you. There is another note at the end of this chapter. Be
sure to read it. Wishing you all a very Happy Easter.**

Appendix

This is a song I came upon on the net. I’ve never heard it but to my delight it fitted the story
perfectly including the title. So I couldn’t help not including it in the story. A couple of lines
have been changed to fit the story. Enjoy……

Legendary Love:

You fill my heart with desire
I know I’d give my life for you
Let me feel the passion in your arms
Lying by your side, the whole night through
I need you? Forever
Even though we’ll face challenges aplenty,
It’s worth living for
Here with me is where you belong


I’d pay the price a thousand times to share my life with you
I’d hold you close and never let you go
’cos I feel I’ve always known you
You’re the one I’ve been dreaming of
You are my destiny
And this will be a legendary love

I confess I took a chance

Of wishing you were mine

I came to love my destiny

Time will never change the way I feel
No-one else can love you more
What we have is worth fighting for

I’d pay the price a thousand times to share my life with you
I’d hold you close and never let you go
’cos I feel I’ve always known you
You’re the one I’ve been dreaming of
You are my destiny
And this will be a legendary love

’cos I feel I’ve always known you
You’re the one I’ve been dreaming of
You are my destiny
And this will be a legendary love

*-by Beverly Craven*

Now to something totally different - While writing the story I used to make notes for each
chapter. At a time I did up to four chapters. After the story finished I found it very interesting
to go through them. Of course I’d made several changes in them through the story. I may have added
something extra in the story or missed something in the notes. Had all the changes been visible it
would have been even more interesting. But thanks to modern technology I have the option of
erasing. The file of these rough notes played a major part in my being able to complete the story.
So I’m pasting these notes below. A horizontal line will indicate the set of chapters for which I
made notes in one sitting. For example the line after chapter three indicates I first made the
notes for chapters one to three, then wrote and posted them before making the notes for next couple
of chapters. So here they are.

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 1: Concerned Parents**

Talk with Hermione

Not going back to Hogwarts

Cut off from magical world

Letter to Harry, indifference

Flashback 1

Phone call

Flashback 2

Dream

Phone call again

**Chapter 2: No More Waiting**

The rescue

Peter’s revelations

Granger’s recovery

Harry staying with Hermione

No more waiting

Discovery about prime horcrux

Plan to end Voldemort

Conversation with Wormtail

Hermione’s assurances

**Chapter 3: The Final** **Battle**

Journey to the Riddle House

Interactions with deatheaters

Changing back

Face to face with Voldemort

Priori Incantatem

Disarming, Animagus, Crucio

Flashback 3

The kill

Escape

Soul burning

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 4: Normality Returns**

Spreading the news

Breakup with Ginny

Bill’s wedding

Plans of Hogwarts

Granger’s return home

Talk with Hermione

The small but surprise birthday party

Diagon Alley, Ron/Hermione

Another talk

Back to Hogwarts

**Chapter 5: Life Goes On**

New faculty

Head boy and Head girl, separate room

DADA classes

Snape’s news from McGonagall

Quidditch tryouts, Harry/Ron/Hermione talk

Ron/Hermione scene

Announcement of Halloween Ball, finding dates

Harry’s reluctance, going with Luna

First match, Ron/Hermione interaction

The first fight

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 6: From Bad to Worse**

Hermione’s talk with Harry

The patch up

The Halloween Ball

Luna’s revelations

Harry’s description, realization

Felix Felices (no)

Trip to Hogsmede

Another argument

Ron uncovered

Harry knows the truth

Breakup

**Chapter 7: A Harsh Lesson for Ron**

Ron/Hermione argument

Harry intervenes, Harry/Ron talk

Lavender, Parvatis’s entry, Parvati’s revelations

Ron isolated, talk with Remus

Luna learns truth, talks to Harry

Hermione in depression, letter, talk with Harry

Food fight

Reply of letter

Harry/Ron at quidditch practice

Ron eavesdrops on Remus/Tonks

Dream

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 8: Getting Closer**

Harry’s feelings

Luna’s talk with Ron

Hogsmede visit, Christmas shopping

Pre NEWTs, study sessions

Near revelation

Fun in the snow

Ron’s goodbye, another talk with Luna

Harry Hermione getting closer

Christmas plans at Hogwarts

Harry watching Hermione

Change of mind

**Chapter 9: My Heart Will Go On**

Christmas Eve morning, sending gifts out

Sneaking away to Hogsmede, Date

Celebrations at Hogwarts

Back to Head’s quarters, asking, together at last

Christmas morning, opening gifts

Near the lake, first kiss, Reactions

Christmas lunch with teachers, the others know

James/Lily carving

Private supper at Head’s quarters

Late night chat, surprise desert

Content

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 10: Questions Answered**

Talk begins

Harry post sixth year

Harry after Halloween ball

Hermione third year

Hermione fourth year

Hermione fifth year

Hermione sixth year

Hermione post sixth year

Declaration of Love

Hat/Quill talk

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 11: Second Chance**

Ron at the Burrow, letter from Luna

Ron/Luna meeting, chat

Eve teasing, Ron to the rescue

Comforting, meeting Mr. Lovegood

Quibbler, Ron’s second chance

Invitation to visit Luna

Ginny’s apology

Harry, Hermione with the Quibbler

Welcome back Ron, telling truth to Ron

Harry/Ron talk about Luna

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 12: An Unwanted Visitor**

Second quidditch match, Harry/Hermione interaction

Letter from Cho, Harry’s anger

Insecurity for Hermione, talk with Harry, assurances

Arrival of Cho, Harry’s polite refusal

Cho’s thoughts, dream

Cho’s attempted friendship with Hermione

Hermione’s discussion with Harry and Ron

Night time stroll, Cho follows

Hagrid’s discovery, Hermione’s investigation

McGonagall’s order, partner for Cho

Training with Harry, injury feigning

**Chapter 13: Manipulation and Consequence**

Training again, Evening snacks

Harry’s talk with Luna, Cho spies

Manipulation with the Penseive

Photos spread around, Hermione’s belief in Harry

Ron talks to Luna, kiss, apology, asks for time

Harry/Hermione’s first anniversary in London

Gift from Hermione

Cho trying to get to Harry, but failing

Ginny tells way, McGonagall’s fireplace, snooping

Ron/Luna finally get together

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 14: All about Couples**

Ron/Luna’s news out

Ron’s talk to Lupin

Cho’s talk with Marietta, Plans

Pre Valentines hook ups

Boy’s night out at Hogs Head

Gifts for Valentines Day

Decision of no special celebrations

Special Valentines Day

Cho spies again and gets caught

**Chapter 15: The Turn towards Evil**

Harry/Hermione talk to Cho

Cho in a desperate situation, turns to evil

Research in Library, slavery spell

Luna catches Cho in Library, tells others

Practices, Plan to put it on Hermione

Quidditch with Harry, Cho takes leave

Cho gets to Hermione, asks for help

Casting of spell and trial

Cho tells the truths to Hermione

Hermione meets Harry

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 16: Darkness Everywhere**

Hermione tells Harry, disbelief

Hermione avoids everyone, Luna tries

Harry/Ron/Luna talk, Hermione overhears

Hermione depressed, Dream

Nightly visit to Cho, pleading, threat

Harry tries his luck, fails

Harry in terrible state

Hermione’s thoughts, pain

Harry sees empty bed, investigates

Hermione caught, lies

**Chapter 17: Busted!**

Harry prays, Hermione hears, watches, cries

Harry catches Cho, threatens

Ron/Luna scene, talk about Harry/Hermione

Cho tells Hermione about future plans

Cho moves in on Harry, Hermione watches

Harry attempts again to talk, magic, truth

Plan to catch Cho red handed, McGonagall, Lupin told

Plan works to perfection, Cho under arrest

Together again, romantic moment

Move in proposal

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 18: Home Sweet Home**

Hermione’s response, holiday plans

Cho’s trial, Marietta

Stay with the Granger’s, Approval

Robert talks to Harry

Settling at Leaky Cauldron

House hunting, choice, expenditure

Finalizing deal, being in own house, night stay

Shopping, taste conflicts, solution

Furnishing, Kreacher arrives

Talk about marriage, sex, etc.

Back to Hogwarts

**Chapter 19: Farewell**

Final Quidditch match, speech by Harry

Final Hogsmede visit

Final classes of each subject, Prep leave

NEWTs

Results, Career options, Discussions

Gloom sets in as the end nears

Farewell party

The last morning, goodbyes

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

**Chapter 20: An Unexpected Problem**

Ron’s response, Journey back, Station

Change of mood in seeing the house

First day, night and decision

18 month gap, Christmas at Peaceden

Hermione not well, throwing up, suspected flu

Hermione reads, realizes implications, muggle tests

Harry hears the truth, thought goes in

Hermione’s relief short lived, agrees to Harry

Meeting with Dr. Bones, change of mind

Back home, Hermione tells Harry

**Chapter 21: Plenty of Talks**

Harry’s outrage, argument pursues

No solution reached, postponement, next morning

Parting of ways, change of bedroom

Harry’s talk with Ron and Luna

Hermione’s talk with Neville and Ginny

Bill and Fleur at Peaceden, baby

Photos, Harry and Hermione’s reaction

Room turned upside down, fight again

Neville’s talk with Harry

**Chapter 22: Love Can’t Die**

Harry comes home, cooks, dinner with Hermione

Feelings return, kiss, turn away

Hermione’s request, Harry meets Dr. Bones, Susan

Susan explains things to Harry, visuals

Change of mind, no fear, kisses Susan

Hermione walks in, Trouble

Hermione not at home, Panic, Harry’s guess

Meeting Hermione, Explanations

Acceptance, Shopping, telling Grangers, Dinner together

Proposal

**Chapter 23: Legendary Love**

Wedding night, happiness, postponed Honeymoon

Birth of triplets, happiness again

Names, Godparents, coming home

Leave from work, Harry’s part time work offer

All is well, Ten year jump

Chat between the four kids, Argument

Fun together, Discussion about Christine

Quidditch

Nick asks question to siblings, meaning of Legendary

Legendary love

---------------------------------------------------------------------------------

Hope that was a quick recap of the story! Lastly I’d like to take this chance to thank all the
readers. Writing this story has been a wonderful experience for me. Right from November to April
I’ve spent long hours thinking how this story can move ahead and maintain its originality. I’ve
loved every bit of the journey. I hope all of you have had a memorable experience too. There were
some parts which weren’t easy to write. Mainly the brief Ron-Hermione relationship and Harry and
Hermione’s disagreement over the abortion. I had to face a lot of stick for those in the reviews.
However sometimes you have to go against popular demand to help the plot.

This story finished exactly a year after my last story ‘Something Happens When You Are In Love’.
During this year a lot has changed in my writing and I’d like to share a few statistics between the
two stories to emphasize this. I’m using SHWYAIL and HHLL as short forms. Sorry for the poor
formatting but this was the best I could manage within the limitations of Portkey.

Type: **SHWYAIL:** Based on movie, **HHLL:** Original

Words: **SHWYAIL:** 18806, **HHLL:** 86699 (Before Appendix)

Reviews: **SHWYAIL:** 72, **HHLL:** 482 (Before Appendix)

Hits: **SHWYAIL:** 24999, **HHLL:** 62185 (Before Appendix)

Chapters: **SHWYAIL:** 16, **HHLL:** 23 (Before Appendix)

Words/Chapter: **SHWYAIL:** 1175.375, **HHLL:** 3769.521

Reviews/Chapter: **SHWYAIL:** 4.5, **HHLL:** 20.956

Reviews/1000 words: **SHWYAIL:** 3.828, **HHLL:** 5.559

Reviews/1000 hits: **SHWYAIL:** 2.88, **HHLL:** 7.751

Max Reviews: **SHWYAIL:** 9 (Chapter 15), **HHLL:** 41 (Chapter 1)

(Excl. 1st Chapter): **SHWYAIL:** 9 (Chapter 15), **HHLL:** 30 (Chapter 21)

Min Reviews: **SHWYAIL:** 1 (Chapter 3), **HHLL:** 12 (Chapter 7)

This shows a positive trend! I’m really happy that all of you have been so appreciative of my
work. A special mention for all the reviewers. This story wouldn’t have been a success without your
support. Your kind words were sources of motivation during a writer’s block, hints to what I should
write, caution against what I should not prolong unnecessarily and a great sense of
satisfaction.

As for me, due to my busy schedule I’m going to be unable to write anymore. I hope it will ease
up in a few months. So there are no plans for a sequel or a new story. If and when I do write again
it’ll be something totally new. One thing you can be sure of is that it’ll be Harry/Hermione. With
that I’d like to bid you farewell, at least for now. Once again a big thank you to everyone.

With Best Wishes,

coolman.



